Selected quad for the lemma: order_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
order_n church_n time_n word_n 3,052 5 3.9362 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A10389 A revievv of the Councell of Trent VVherein are contained the severall nullities of it: with the many grievances and prejudices done by it to Christian kings and princes: as also to all catholique churches in the world; and more particularly to the Gallicane Church. First writ in French by a learned Roman-Catholique. Now translated into English by G.L.; Revision du Concile de Trente. English Ranchin, Guillaume, b. 1560.; Langbaine, Gerard, 1609-1658. 1638 (1638) STC 20667; ESTC S116164 572,475 418

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

keep_v it_o so_o close_o it_o appear_v more_o in_o deed_n that_o in_o writing_n in_o what_o sort_n the_o catholic_a faith_n prosper_v by_o this_o mean_n 19_o gregory_n of_o haymburgh_n a_o german_a lawyer_n pap._n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n complain_v likewise_o of_o these_o annates_fw-la and_o other_o exaction_n of_o the_o pope_n upon_o benefice_n and_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n the_o empire_n say_v he_o be_v thus_o divide_v or_o vacant_a they_o proceed_v further_o reserve_v to_o themselves_o all_o advowson_n and_o dignity_n how_o canonical_o soever_o dispose_v of_o yea_o and_o the_o presentation_n to_o benefice_n surcharge_v withal_o the_o bishopriques_n and_o other_o live_n with_o annates_fw-la and_o other_o symoniacall_a exaction_n for_o investiture_n into_o these_o live_n that_o otherwise_o belong_v to_o the_o empire_n that_o the_o pope_n by_o this_o mean_n may_v squeeze_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o world_n as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o content_a to_o have_v usurp_v the_o empire_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o article_n propose_v by_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o christendom_n at_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n there_o to_o be_v reform_v 40._o conceive_v in_o these_o term_n of_o annates_fw-la and_o petty_a service_n and_o indeed_o there_o be_v a_o mighty_a bicker_n about_o it_o betwixt_o the_o cardinal_n who_o oppose_v the_o proposal_n and_o the_o french_a who_o do_v earnest_o solicit_v the_o contrary_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o answer_n of_o our_o french_a man_n print_v among_o the_o work_n of_o nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangiis_fw-la but_o at_o last_o the_o cardinal_n by_o mean_n of_o their_o shift_n and_o put-offs_a get_v the_o victory_n insomuch_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o it_o 20_o albert_n crant_n a_o german_a historian_n and_o devine_n in_o his_o book_n call_v wandalia_fw-la 5._o speak_v of_o a_o ten_o which_o pope_n paul_n the_o second_o will_v have_v lay_v upon_o germany_n for_o make_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n say_v that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o the_o rhine_n be_v scarce_o willing_a to_o give_v way_n to_o this_o imposition_n because_o the_o pope_n receive_v the_o first_o fruit_n which_o be_v a_o great_a pressure_n to_o germany_n tractand●●_n and_o all_o say_v he_o that_o the_o cardinal_n may_v have_v to_o feed_v their_o beast_n volaterranus_n speak_v of_o rome_n in_o the_o 30_o book_n of_o his_o commentary_n dedicate_v by_o he_o to_o pope_n julius_n the_o 2_o sai_z that_o living_n be_v there_o bestow_v for_o wage_n 〈…〉_z and_o the_o spiritual_a treasure_n be_v make_v a_o merchandise_n 21_o there_o be_v a_o arrest_n of_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n date_v the_o 11_o of_o september_n 1406_o wherein_o it_o be_v say_v 21._o that_o pope_n benet_n and_o his_o officer_n shall_v from_o thenceforth_o give_v over_o and_o abstain_v from_o the_o exaction_n of_o annates_fw-la in_o this_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o the_o country_n of_o daulphiny_a the_o council_n of_o basil_n make_v also_o a_o very_a remarkable_a decree_n hereabout_o in_o the_o 21_o session_n the_o holy_a council_n ordain_v that_o from_o this_o time_n forward_o there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o exact_v either_o in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o where_o for_o letter_n bull_n seal_n annates_fw-la common_a and_o petty_a service_n first-fruit_n or_o any_o other_o title_n name_n or_o colour_n whatsoever_o for_o confirmation_n of_o election_n admission_n of_o request_n proviso_n of_o presentation_n nor_o for_o any_o collation_n deposition_n election_n demand_n or_o presentation_n to_o be_v make_v even_o by_o lay_v man_n nor_o for_o institution_n installation_n and_o investiture_n in_o church_n even_a cathedral_n and_o metropolitan_a monastery_n dignity_n benefice_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a office_n whatsoever_o nor_o for_o order_n nor_o the_o sacred_a benediction_n nor_o for_o the_o pall._n this_o same_o decree_n be_v in_o express_a word_n insert_v in_o the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n and_o confirm_v by_o it_o we_o may_v take_v notice_n by_o the_o way_n of_o the_o prohibition_n make_v by_o the_o council_n and_o the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n against_o the_o pope_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o take_v any_o thing_n for_o the_o mantle_n or_o pall_n which_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o sell_v to_o archbishop_n and_o metropolitan_o at_o a_o good_a round_a price_n as_o they_o do_v also_o afterward_o notwithstanding_o these_o decree_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o complaint_n which_o langius_n make_v against_o leo_n the_o 10_o 1513._o a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n say_v he_o be_v extort_a for_o the_o purchase_n of_o bishop_n pall_v to_o the_o detriment_n of_o church_n against_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o basil_n which_o ordain_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v pay_v for_o the_o pall_n nor_o for_o the_o confirmation_n or_o obtain_n of_o other_o office_n but_o to_o return_v to_o annates_fw-la 22_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o the_o bull_n of_o pope_n leo_n the_o 10_o add_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o concordate_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o letter_n patent_n of_o king_n francis_n the_o first_o have_v derogate_a from_o the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n but_o that_o bull_n be_v never_o receive_v and_o approve_v in_o france_n 2._o as_o m._n peter_n rebuffus_n do_v testify_v this_o constitution_n say_v he_o as_o be_v about_o a_o money_n matter_n be_v never_o receive_v by_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o kingdom_n nor_o be_v it_o comprehend_v within_o the_o concordate_n nor_o the_o king_n declaration_n concern_v it_o verify_v in_o the_o court_n of_o parliament_n and_o indeed_o all_o such_o annates_fw-la be_v express_o prohibit_v in_o the_o second_o article_n of_o the_o decree_n at_o orleans_n upon_o the_o remonstrance_n and_o request_n of_o the_o delegate_n of_o the_o say_a state_n to_o the_o end_n that_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v no_o money_n for_o vacancy_n nor_o annate_fw-it be_v pay_v for_o the_o grant_n of_o archbishopriques_n bishopriques_n abbey_n or_o other_o benefice_n that_o concern_v the_o consistory_n we_o have_v determine_v to_o confer_v and_o treat_v more_o large_o hereabout_o with_o the_o commissioner_n of_o our_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o our_o council_n and_o according_a to_o decree_n of_o the_o sacred_a synod_n and_o ancient_a statute_n of_o the_o king_n our_o predecessor_n and_o the_o arrest_n of_o our_o court_n of_o parliament_n we_o do_v ordain_v that_o all_o transportation_n of_o gold_n or_o silver_n out_o of_o our_o kingdom_n and_o all_o payment_n of_o money_n under_o colour_n of_o annate_fw-it vacance-money_n or_o otherwise_o shall_v be_v leave_v off_o and_o surcease_v under_o pain_n of_o pay_v fourfold_a to_o all_o such_o as_o do_v contrary_a to_o this_o present_a decree_n but_o afterward_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o decree_n be_v suspend_v by_o the_o letter_n patent_n of_o the_o same_o prince_n date_v the_o 10_o of_o january_n 1562_o procure_v by_o the_o earnest_a entreaty_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n and_o annates_fw-la be_v tolerate_v in_o this_o realm_n by_o reason_n that_o the_o pope_n assure_v the_o king_n he_o will_v take_v order_n for_o a_o reformation_n herein_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o content_n of_o the_o say_a letter_n which_o run_v thus_o 23_o charles_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o at_o our_o come_n to_o the_o crown_n at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o three_o estate_n of_o our_o kingdom_n hold_v in_o the_o city_n of_o orleans_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o our_o blood_n and_o other_o great_a eminent_a person_n of_o our_o privy_a council_n we_o command_v our_o subject_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o transport_v or_o carry_v any_o more_o money_n out_o of_o our_o say_a realm_n under_o colour_n and_o pretence_n of_o annates_fw-la and_o vacant_n first-fruit_n and_o make_v other_o prohibition_n concern_v the_o obtain_n of_o benefice_n by_o anticipation_n devolution_n dispensation_n or_o such_o like_a mean_n of_o dispatch_n send_v out_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v specify_v in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o ordinance_n aforesaid_a in_o the_o second_o four_o and_o twenty_o second_o article_n which_o prohibition_n be_v publish_v in_o our_o court_n of_o parliament_n and_o other_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o our_o say_a kingdom_n whereof_o complaint_n and_o remonstrance_n have_v be_v make_v unto_o we_o by_o our_o dea●ly_a and_o well-beloved_a cousin_n the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n legate_n in_o france_n who_o have_v entreat_v we_o to_o restore_v the_o thing_n aforesaid_a unto_o that_o state_n wherein_o they_o be_v before_o the_o say_a ordinance_n of_o orleans_n we_o declare_v that_o we_o desire_v to_o render_v all_o honour_n and_o filial_a devotion_n to_o our_o holy_a father_n and_o out_o of_o the_o great_a confidence_n we_o have_v that_o his_o holiness_n will_v look_v to_o provide_v and_o speedy_o to_o take_v order_n as_o need_n require_v that_o the_o matter_n aforesaid_a may_v be_v reform_v as_o
in_o any_o sort_n meddle_v with_o any_o thing_n that_o concern_v the_o church_n save_v only_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v command_v by_o they_o pope_n paul_n the_o three_o serve_v himself_o of_o this_o instance_n against_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o be_v vex_v at_o some_o decree_n which_o be_v ma●e_n concern_v protestant_n at_o the_o imperial_a diet_n of_o spire_n ann_n 1544._o fontanus_n vzziah_n say_v he_o be_v a_o excellent_a king_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o become_v a_o leper_n god_n so_o punish_v his_o presumption_n because_o he_o will_v have_v burn_v incense_n upon_o the_o altar_n it_o be_v a_o work_n well_o please_v to_o god_n to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o his_o church_n but_o that_o be_v the_o priest_n office_n not_o you_o but_o it_o belong_v especicial_o to_o i_o to_o who_o god_n have_v give_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v the_o king_n of_o these_o day_n must_v ●ot_n meddle_v with_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o perform_n of_o ceremony_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n nor_o other_o such_o ecclesiastical_a office_n but_o for_o the_o ordain_v and_o make_v of_o ceremony_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o abuse_n the_o extirpation_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n the_o polity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n they_o both_o may_v and_o must_v look_v to_o they_o and_o have_v always_o do_v so_o either_o by_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o they_o themselves_o or_o command_v they_o to_o be_v do_v or_o by_o confirm_v the_o law_n and_o statute_n and_o ordinance_n concern_v they_o 8_o we_o will_v here_o observe_v by_o the_o way_n that_o the_o emperor_n the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o france_n have_v a_o more_o particular_a right_n and_o privilege_n in_o the_o church_n than_o other_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o unction_n at_o least_o if_o we_o take_v balsamon_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n his_o word_n for_o it_o 238._o who_o comment_v upon_o the_o 69_o chapter_n of_o the_o council_n in_o trullo_n say_v the_o orthodox_n emperor_n that_o promote_v the_o patriarch_n with_o invocation_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o be_v the_o anoint_a of_o the_o lord_n counsel_n go_v in_o to_o the_o bless_a altar_n when_o they_o please_v and_o offer_v incense_n and_o imprint_v the_o character_n with_o a_o triple_a wax_n aswell_o as_o prelate_n do_v yea_o they_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o instruct_v they_o and_o he_o afterward_o add_v forasmuch_o as_o he_o that_o be_v now_o emperor_n be_v also_o the_o lord_n anoint_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o chrism_n that_o be_v of_o the_o unction_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o that_o christ_n our_o god_n be_v reckon_v for_o a_o priest_n aswell_o as_o other_o he_o be_v also_o just_o endow_v with_o priestly_a grace_n some_o be_v of_o opinion_n th●t_v this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o our_o king_n of_o france_n receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n under_o both_o kind_n that_o he_o be_v serve_v by_o those_o clergy_n man_n which_o be_v most_o eminent_a in_o dignity_n as_o the_o archbishop_n cardinal_n as_o when_o the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n be_v to_o be_v give_v in_o the_o church_n they_o must_v bring_v it_o he_o or_o for_o say_v grace_n at_o his_o table_n and_o such_o like_a ●ut_fw-la let_v we_o hold_v on_o our_o former_a course_n 9_o one_o of_o the_o great_a argument_n we_o have_v to_o justify_v this_o power_n be_v that_o counsel_n themselves_o have_v confess_v it_o and_o have_v recommend_v such_o constitution_n to_o our_o observation_n the_o six_o general_n synod_n call_v in_o trullo_n declare_v that_o they_o observe_v the_o canon_n which_o be_v make_v by_o their_o predecessor_n 219._o which_o say_v thus_o if_o any_o city_n by_o the_o emperor_n power_n have_v be_v make_v anew_o or_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v make_v let_v the_o order_n of_o thing_n ecclesiastical_a conform_v unto_o the_o order_n of_o civil_a and_o politic_a affair_n where_o balsamon_n the_o patriarch_n make_v this_o exposition_n this_o present_a canon_n do_v ordain_v that_o such_o city_n as_o be_v prefer_v by_o the_o imperial_a power_n or_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v prefer_v be_v honour_v by_o the_o church_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o emperor_n command_n shall_v prescribe_v that_o be_v be_v account_v episcopal_a or_o metropolitan_a see_v for_o it_o be_v fit_v the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n follow_v the_o civil_a command_n we_o say_v likewise_o that_o by_o this_o present_a canon_n the_o emperor_n have_v power_n to_o erect_v new_a bishopriques_n and_o prefer_v other_o to_o the_o dignity_n of_o metropolitan_o and_o set_v a_o form_n for_o the_o election_n to_o they_o and_o other_o administration_n of_o they_o so_o as_o he_o shall_v think_v good_a according_a hereunto_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v confer_v upon_o boniface_n the_o four_o by_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n 336._o he_o obtain_v of_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n say_v martinus_n polonus_n that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n saint_n peter_n shall_v be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n because_o that_o of_o constantinople_n do_v pretend_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a constantin●s_n 10_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v so_o well_o please_v to_o receive_v this_o primacy_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o prince_n that_o they_o have_v even_o make_v constantine_n the_o great_a speak_v of_o it_o in_o the_o fabulous_a instrument_n of_o his_o donation_n and_o give_v over_o that_o they_o brag_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n erect_v patriarchship_n primacy_n of_o metropolitan_o bishop_n seat_n and_o the_o dignity_n of_o all_o order_n of_o church_n 22._o for_o these_o be_v pope_n nicholas_n the_o second_o his_o own_o word_n in_o his_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v to_o the_o milanois_n which_o be_v record_v in_o the_o great_a decree_n which_o the_o late_a pope_n know_v well_o how_o to_o practice_v insomuch_o that_o pope_n john_n the_o twenty_o second_o make_v horrible_a alteration_n in_o our_o france_n within_o a_o little_a time_n for_o he_o erect_v the_o church_n of_o tholouse_n to_o a_o archbishoprique_n 1317._o divide_v the_o diocese_n of_o tholouse_n into_o six_o bishopriques_n the_o bishop_n whereof_o shall_v be_v suffragans_fw-la to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o tholouse_n and_o turn_v six_o village_n into_o city_n to_o wit_n montauban_n rieux_n lombez_n abbey_n st._n papoul_n lavaur_n and_o mirepoix_n lodge_v the_o bishop_n in_o they_o and_o erect_v the_o episcopal_a seat_n there_o assign_v to_o every_o o●e_a his_o proper_a diocese_n he_o create_v two_o bishopriques_n within_o the_o archbishoprique_n of_o narbon_n the_o first_o at_o limoux_n who_o seat_n he_o translate_v to_o alet_fw-la not_o ●●ng_v after_o the_o second_o in_o the_o abbey_n of_o saint_n pons_n set_v out_o their_o diocese_n he_o divide_v also_o the_o bishoprique_n of_o alby_n into_o two_o and_o create_v one_o at_o castres_n he_o erect_v divers_a other_o beside_o which_o be_v reckon_v up_o in_o particular_a ●y_a the_o author_n of_o the_o continuation_n to_o martinus_n polonus_n from_o whence_o i_o borrow_v the_o former_a passage_n verbatim_o but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o our_o former_a discourse_n 11_o a_o certain_a council_n of_o paris_n hold_v under_o lewes_n the_o gentle_a say_v that_o the_o church_n approve_v and_o observe_v a_o constitution_n make_v by_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n concern_v excommunication_n emperor_n as_o concern_v unlawful_a excommunication_n say_v it_o the_o law_n of_o the_o catholic_a emperor_n justinian_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v observe_v and_o approve_v have_v ordain_v that_o no_o priest_n shall_v excommunicate_v any_o man_n till_o such_o time_n as_o the_o cause_n be_v prove_v for_o which_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n do_v command_v it_o to_o be_v inflict_v 3._o this_o very_a constitution_n on_o justinian_n have_v be_v follow_v and_o allow_v by_o our_o pope_n as_o they_o themselves_o do_v testify_v in_o their_o book_n and_o the_o addition_n make_v unto_o it_o by_o the_o gloss_n be_v remarkable_a so_o for_o a_o long_a time_n about_o eight_o hundred_o year_n the_o emperor_n make_v law_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o affair_n and_o the_o church_n obey_v they_o this_o gloss_n be_v afterward_o put_v out_o because_o it_o tell_v too_o much_o 12_o at_o the_o council_n of_o meaux_n hold_v in_o the_o year_n 945_o it_o be_v say_v 872._o that_o the_o capitulary_a law_n concern_v the_o church_n which_o be_v make_v and_o set_v out_o by_o the_o great_a emperor_n charl●maine_n and_o by_o the_o emperor_n lewes_n be_v strict_o observe_v as_o it_o be_v know_v that_o law_n shall_v be_v observe_v the_o same_o council_n entreat_v king_n charles_n the_o young_a to_o grant_v the_o bishop_n a_o free_a liberty_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o ministery_n in_o their_o parish_n the_o same_o charles_n the_o great_a have_v ordain_v in_o his_o capitulary_a 91_o that_o to_o every_o church_n there_o shall_v be_v give_v only_o one_o entire_a manor_n without_o any_o other_o
season_v wherefore_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n his_o decree_n be_v scarce_o well_o receive_v yet_o nor_o ever_o will_v be_v till_o he_o have_v reform_v himself_o and_o his_o dependent_n and_o in_o good_a deed_n i_o think_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o the_o deformation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o wound_n in_o the_o head_n which_o have_v need_n to_o be_v cure_v first_o and_o foremost_a 24_o and_o anon_o after_o wherefore_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o a_o incredible_a thing_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v be_v reform_v unless_o first_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o but_o as_o the_o world_n go_v now_o we_o may_v see_v how_o hard_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v and_o anon_o after_o those_o which_o have_v the_o presidency_n in_o counsel_n on_o the_o pope_n behalf_n when_o they_o see_v that_o matter_n in_o the_o council_n make_v against_o their_o master_n and_o they_o what_o can_v be_v expect_v from_o they_o but_o that_o they_o will_v withstand_v the_o decree_n of_o such_o counsel_n with_o might_n and_o main_a either_o by_o dissolve_v they_o or_o sow_v dissension_n in_o they_o and_o so_o the_o thing_n shall_v remain_v unperfect_v and_o we_o be_v drive_v to_o return_v to_o the_o old_a wilderness_n of_o error_n and_o ignorance_n every_o body_n know_v this_o to_o be_v most_o true_a unless_o it_o be_v some_o one_o haply_o who_o be_v not_o experience_v in_o time_n past_a the_o tragedy_n which_o be_v act_v in_o our_o age_n at_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n do_v sufficient_o prove_v it_o as_o they_o know_v well_o who_o have_v lay_v down_o the_o story_n before_o our_o eye_n 25_o felix_n hemmertin_n who_o live_v at_o the_o same_o time_n a_o great_a zealot_n of_o the_o pope_n so_o far_o that_o he_o rail_v upon_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n yet_o he_o thus_o speak_v of_o they_o ec●lesiastica_fw-la i_o protest_v i_o will_v open_v my_o mouth_n to_o speak_v in_o parable_n and_o will_v at_o first_o set_v down_o such_o proposition_n as_o be_v thing_n which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o know_v and_o which_o our_o forefather_n have_v declare_v unto_o we_o and_o which_o have_v not_o be_v conceal_v by_o their_o child_n in_o another_o generation_n true_o by_o read_v turn_v search_a peruse_v and_o examine_v all_o the_o history_n and_o all_o those_o that_o have_v be_v verse_v in_o they_o we_o find_v that_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n through_o all_o his_o successor_n one_o after_o another_o follow_v herein_o those_o that_o have_v write_v exact_o of_o the_o act_n and_o affair_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n until_o this_o present_a we_o never_o see_v hear_v nor_o understand_v that_o great_a and_o more_o notorious_a excess_n be_v commit_v in_o point_n of_o avarice_n ambition_n oppression_n cheat_v cozen_a naughtiness_n cruelty_n and_o severity_n by_o way_n of_o state●_n and_o under_o colour_n of_o mildness_n than_o be_v now_o adays_o commit_v by_o great_a and_o small_a that_o have_v any_o command_n in_o the_o house_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n 26_o james_n piccolomini_n cardinal_n of_o papia_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o pius_n the_o second_o have_v insert_v among_o his_o epistle_n a_o letter_n which_o a_o friend_n of_o his_o writ_n to_o he_o from_o rome_n in_o this_o manner_n suit_n will_v you_o know_v what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o city_n nothing_o but_o as_o it_o use_v to_o be_v nothing_o but_o course_v canvas_v and_o plot_v the_o say_n of_o the_o philosopher_n be_v verify_v the_o court_n be_v a_o place_n ordain_v for_o deceive_v and_o be_v deceive_v mutual_o the_o counsel_n seldom_o sit_v the_o pope_n be_v mighty_o trouble_v with_o care_n that_o be_v with_o the_o care_n of_o that_o war_n which_o he_o have_v voluntary_o undertake_v as_o the_o same_o epistle_n tell_v we_o lest_o any_o shall_v think_v that_o it_o be_v the_o zeal_n of_o thy_o house_n have_v eat_v i_o up_o 27_o in_o the_o dialogue_n entitle_v aureum_fw-la speculum_fw-la papae_fw-la make_v about_o two_o hundred_o year_n ago_o we_o find_v this_o exclamation_n good_a god_n with_o what_o danger_n i●_n the_o ship_n of_o st._n peter_n toss_v the_o preach_n of_o paul_n be_v despise_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n neglect_v and_o in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o other_o church_n there_o be_v no_o soundness_n from_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n theodorick_n of_o nihem_n who_o be_v the_o pope_n secretary_n ●cal●s_n say_v as_o much_o in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o second_o book_n of_o schism_n which_o he_o write_v in_o the_o year_n 1410._o in_o effect_n there_o be_v no_o soundness_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n even_o from_o the_o head_n to_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n as_o also_o nichola●_n cl●mangiu●_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o ruin_n and_o reparation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v true_a rome_n from_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n unto_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n there_o be_v no_o soundness_n in_o it_o 28_o baptista_n mantuan_n a_o great_a devine_n in_o his_o time_n 8●_n a_o friar_n of_o the_o order_n of_o st._n mary_n of_o mount_n carmel_n a_o italian_a bear_v who_o live_v about_o 1490._o have_v speak_v much_o of_o this_o subject_n espensaeus_n the_o devine_n have_v stuff_v ten_o or_o eleven_o page_n with_o his_o verse_n which_o talk_v of_o nothing_o more_o than_o the_o vice_n abuse_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o court_n of_o rome_n i_o will_v forbear_v to_o recite_v they_o content_v myself_o to_o refer_v the_o curious_a reader_n either_o to_o the_o author_n himself_o or_o to_o he_o that_o there_o quote_v they_o 29_o mr._n john_n le_fw-fr maire_n one_o of_o our_o french_a historian_n who_o write_v his_o book_n of_o schism_n about_o the_o year_n 1500_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o they_o be_v about_o this_o reformation_n in_o his_o time_n without_o which_o the_o former_a counsel_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n show_v withal_o how_o necessary_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v every_o good_a christian_n say_v he_o ought_v to_o pray_v god_n that_o the_o two_o last_o counsel_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n may_v engender_v one_o great_a universal_a and_o general_a council_n of_o all_o the_o latin_a church_n to_o reform_v that_o church_n as_o well_o in_o the_o head_n as_o the_o member_n so_o as_o those_o general_n counsel_n use_v to_o do_v and_o that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o keep_v at_o lion_n it_o may_v be_v keep_v in_o some_o other_o place_n most_o expedient_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o public_a good_a which_o may_v be_v very_o well_o do_v at_o this_o present_a consider_v the_o great_a peace_n amity_n and_o union_n which_o be_v betwixt_o the_o two_o great_a potentate_n in_o christendom_n the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n together_o with_o their_o three_o confederate_a in_o the_o league_n the_o catholic_a king_n ferdinand_n of_o arragon_n who_o ought_v altogether_o to_o be_v incline_v to_o reform_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o reformation_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v make_v 30_o the_o second_o council_n of_o pisa_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o year_n 1512_o where_o they_o consult_v about_o many_o good_a rule_n against_o the_o pope_n but_o julius_n the_o second_o play_v they_o a_o trick●_n call_v the_o council_n of_o lateran_n which_o make_v that_o of_o pisa_n to_o cease_v and_o disannul_v all_o the_o decree_n thereof_o so_o that_o we_o be_v yet_o complain_v against_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n now_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a at_o that_o time_n to_o proceed_v to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o head_n we_o perceive_v well_o enough_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o mantuan_n and_o john_n le_fw-fr maire_n as_o also_o it_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n of_o pisa_n as_o we_o have_v say_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n this_o very_a necessity_n continue_v till_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n so_o much_o we_o learn_v from_o pope_n adrian_n the_o six_o and_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o delegate_n of_o paul_n the_o three_o for_o matter_n of_o reformation_n as_o also_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o langius_n a_o german_a monk_n in_o the_o chronicle_n which_o he_o write_v in_o the_o year_n 1520._o for_o see_v here_o the_o description_n of_o a_o few_o abuse_n of_o rome_n under_o leo_n the_o ten_o 1113._o the_o desire_n of_o money_n make_v all_o thing_n saleable_a at_o rome_n simony_n be_v tolerate_v for_o gold_n plurality_n of_o prebend_n be_v grant_v in_o great_a number_n all_o benefice_n and_o dignity_n of_o what_o condition_n soever_o be_v reserve_v for_o the_o cardinal_n protonotary_n and_o pope_n minion_n grace_n and_o resignation_n be_v grant_v without_o any_o stint_n annates_fw-la or_o half_a of_o fruit_n
make_v no_o reckon_n of_o the_o common_a salvation_n the_o emperor_n therefore_o as_o the_o protector_n of_o the_o church_n will_v take_v the_o charge_n of_o it_o 7_o as_o for_o our_o king_n we_o need_v not_o doubt_v but_o they_o have_v the_o same_o authority_n consider_v they_o have_v power_n to_o dissolve_v counsel_n after_o they_o have_v assemble_v they_o so_o lewes_n the_o 11_o be_v use_v to_o do_v witness_n john_n le_fw-fr maire_n upon_o a_o time_n say_v he_o king_n lewes_n the_o 11_o assemble_v the_o gallican_n church_n and_o all_o the_o university_n together_o in_o a_o council_n in_o the_o city_n of_o orleans_n aswell_o the_o better_a to_o understand_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o say_v pragmatique_a sanction_n as_o also_o to_o take_v order_n for_o the_o annates_fw-la of_o church_n live_n by_o which_o exaction_n the_o extreme_a greediness_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v vex_v and_o impoverish_v the_o realm_n of_o france_n by_o rake_v up_o every_o year_n a_o marvellous_a great_a sum_n of_o money_n the_o precedent_n of_o this_o council_n be_v the_o late_a mounseur_fw-fr peter_n de_fw-fr bourbon_n lord_n of_o beajeu_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o the_o point_n be_v bring_v in_o question_n in_o come_v the_o king_n who_o have_v alter_v his_o resolution_n and_o ere_o any_o other_o conclusion_n be_v determine_v he_o give_v every_o man_n leave_v to_o depart_v say_v that_o he_o will_v call_v they_o to_o lion_n hereafter_o which_o be_v never_o do_v chap._n x._o that_o it_o belong_v to_o emperor_n and_o king_n to_o prescribe_v the_o form_n to_o counsel_n both_o for_o person_n and_o matter_n and_o other_o circumstance_n chalc._n 1_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n write_v to_o cyrill_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n to_o bring_v with_o he_o unto_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n certain_a other_o bishop_n out_o of_o his_o province_n namely_o such_o as_o he_o shall_v think_v fit_a and_o able_a man_n the_o same_o emperor_n enjoin_v dioscoru●_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o letter_n to_o take_v unto_o he_o to_o the_o number_n of_o twenty_o bishop_n eminent_a for_o their_o faith_n and_o learning_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o along_o to_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o they_o have_v call_v to_o be_v hold_v upon_o the_o first_o of_o august_n 15._o it_o please_v the_o emperor_n constantius_n say_v sozomen_n to_o call_v a_o council_n at_o nicomedia_n a_o city_n of_o bythinia_n and_o to_o cause_v such_o bishop_n of_o every_o nation_n as_o shall_v there_o be_v find_v fit_a to_o consider_v of_o thing_n wise_o and_o sufficient_a to_o apprehend_v and_o argue_v subtley_n and_o learned_o to_o repair_v thither_o with_o all_o diligence_n upon_o a_o day_n prefix_v who_o may_v represent_v unto_o the_o synod_n the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o their_o several_a province_n 2_o they_o allow_v also_o who_o they_o please_v to_o go_v into_o synod_n so_o by_o the_o emperor_n martian_n command_v there_o be_v certain_a priest_n and_o monk_n of_o egypt_n bring_v into_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n counsel_n notwithstanding_o all_o opposition_n to_o the_o contrary_a they_o propose_v what_o point_n shall_v be_v dispute_v and_o prescribe_v what_o matter_n shall_v be_v treat_v of_o the_o emperor_n constans_n and_o constantius_n give_v the_o council_n of_o sardis_n leave_v to_o dispute_v question_n council_n and_o examine_v thing_n anew_o without_o stand_v to_o what_o have_v be_v therein_o already_o determine_v by_o former_a counsel_n so_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o very_a council_n assure_v we_o in_o those_o letter_n which_o they_o send_v to_o pope_n julius_n there_o be_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v handle_v hil●rii_n for_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n give_v we_o leave_v to_o dispute_v anew_o of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v former_o determine_v and_o especial_o of_o the_o holy_a faith_n and_o integrity_n of_o that_o truth_n which_o they_o have_v violate_v 3_o justinian_n do_v the_o like_a at_o the_o five_o general_n hold_v at_o chalcedon_n martian_a forbid_v that_o of_o chalcedon_n to_o dispute_v any_o otherwise_o about_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n than_o according_a to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a eph●sin_n the_o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n write_v to_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n how_o they_o have_v send_v candidianus_n their_o ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n to_o who_o among_o other_o thing_n they_o have_v give_v this_o in_o charge_n to_o see_v that_o no_o other_o question_n be_v propose_v till_o such_o time_n as_o the_o controversy_n than_o a_o foot_n be_v first_o decide_v an●_n according_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o that_o council_n speak_v in_o their_o letter_n to_o those_o emperor_n we_o be_v assemble_v at_o ephesus_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n than_o to_o consult_v and_o treat_v of_o the_o faith_n according_a to_o your_o holy_a edict_n 4_o our_o french_a counsel_n afford_v we_o very_o pregnant_a proof_n and_o precedent_n hereof_o for_o in_o the_o most_o of_o they_o our_o king_n cause_v they_o to_o consult_v about_o such_o point_n as_o they_o propose_v and_o do_v often_o call_v they_o together_o of_o purpose_n to_o take_v then_o advice_n in_o doubtful_a case_n king_n clovys_n send_v certain_a head_n or_o chapter_n unto_o the_o first_o council_n of_o orleans_n 1045._o which_o himself_o have_v call_v there_o to_o be_v discuss_v which_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n according_o by_o that_o synod_n the_o resolution_n be_v send_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o synod_n and_o submit_v unto_o his_o judgement_n 5_o king_n guntrand_n call_v a_o synod_n at_o mascon_n chief_o to_o make_v a_o decree_n against_o those_o that_o travel_n upon_o the_o sunday_n which_o he_o confirm_v afterward_o by_o his_o edict_n direct_v unto_o the_o same_o synod_n conc._n we_o will_v and_o command_v say_v he_o that_o what_o we_o here_o enjoin_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o edict_n be_v from_o henceforth_o inviolable_o observe_v inasmuch_o as_o we_o have_v cause_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o now_o publish_v to_o be_v determine_v as_o you_o know_v and_o ju●ged_v at_o the_o council_n of_o mascon_n 6_o carloman_n who_o be_v call_v duke_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o french_a 456._o assemble_v a_o council_n in_o france_n anno_fw-la 742_o the_o place_n we_o know_v not_o to_o take_v advice_n of_o it_o how_o he_o may_v reestablish_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o religion_n which_o have_v be_v tread_v under_o foot_n and_o overturn_v in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o predecessor_n and_o by_o what_o mean_v christian_a people_n may_v compass_v their_o salvation_n and_o not_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v seduce_v by_o false_a priest_n 7_o the_o emperor_n lewes_n the_o gentle_a make_v a_o exhortation_n at_o the_o council_n of_o aix_n in_o germany_n which_o he_o have_v there_o assemble_v when_o he_o come_v into_o it_o 638._o wherein_o he_o advise_v the_o bishop_n to_o take_v a_o course_n with_o some_o thing_n which_o he_o then_o propose_v and_o which_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o reformation_n he_o prescribe_v also_o a_o certain_a form_n unto_o they_o which_o they_o be_v to_o follow_v and_o which_o be_v applaud_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n 8_o the_o same_o emperor_n have_v by_o his_o authority_n cause_v a_o council_n to_o be_v assemble_v at_o pavy_n he_o send_v certain_a point_n unto_o they_o command_v they_o to_o deliberate_v upon_o they_o and_o that_o with_o this_o clause_n we_o send_v these_o chapter_n unto_o you_o to_o consult_v upon_o they_o and_o let_v we_o know_v your_o advice_n council_n for_o some_o thing_n of_o lesser_a moment_n which_o concern_v the_o general_a yet_o so_o as_o they_o touch_v upon_o some_o man_n particular_a and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o reformation_n we_o will_v that_o you_o pas●e_n your_o sentence_n upon_o they_o and_o send_v it_o to_o we_o afterward_o counsel_n 9_o the_o emperor_n lewes_n and_o lotharius_n call_v a_o synod_n at_o paris_n anno_fw-la 824_o to_o deliberate_v upon_o the_o point_n of_o image_n so_o say_v the_o bishop_n there_o about_o the_o business_n which_o your_o piety_n command_v we_o namely_o about_o the_o case_n of_o image_n princip_n 10_o the_o same_o lewes_n and_o lotharius_n his_o son_n propose_v likewise_o certain_a head_n or_o chapter_n to_o another_o council_n by_o they_o assemble_v at_o paris_n in_o the_o act_n whereof_o the_o bishop_n addressing_z their_o speech_n to_o the_o emperor_n do_v say_v edit_n your_o serenity_n have_v collect_v all_o that_o seem_v worthy_a of_o correction_n at_o this_o present_a into_o certain_a head_n upon_o which_o head_n they_o do_v deliberate_a crassi_n 11_o lewes_n the_o gross_a have_v call_v a_o council_n at_o estampe_n he_o make_v they_o consult_v whether_o he_o shall_v acknowledge_v pope_n innocent_a who_o be_v flee_v into_o his_o realm_n or_o no._n and_o upon_o the_o advice_n there_o take_v he_o approve_v of_o his_o election_n and_o
edict_n already_o allege_v 39_o and_o after_o all_o this_o yet_o this_o council_n will_v have_v the_o account_n of_o college_n so_o erect_v to_o be_v hear_v and_o examine_v yearly_o by_o the_o bishop_n with_o the_o two_o deputy_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o the_o other_o two_o of_o the_o clergy_n which_o be_v derogatory_n to_o the_o edict_n allege_v here_o before_o whereby_o the_o make_n of_o such_o account_n of_o building-money_n and_o hospital_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o king_n judge_n inasmuch_o as_o there_o shall_v no_o account_n be_v make_v to_o they_o hereafter_o of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o revenue_n which_o shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o such_o building_n and_o hospital_n to_o be_v employ_v to_o the_o use_n of_o those_o college_n and_o seminary_n but_o only_o to_o the_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n wherein_o there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a accumulation_n of_o grievance_n for_o they_o to_o who_o it_o forme_o belong_v to_o make_v those_o account_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o it_o by_o mean_n of_o such_o application_n of_o the_o revenue_n to_o another_o use_n and_o suppose_v that_o may_v be_v admit_v yet_o it_o be_v reasonable_a that_o those_o account_n be_v still_o make_v before_o the_o king_n officer_n at_o least_o that_o the_o major_a and_o sheriff_n of_o the_o town_n where_o such_o house_n be_v and_o such_o like_a person_n be_v call_v consider_v that_o the_o mean_n of_o college_n and_o school_n be_v no_o more_o spiritual_a than_o that_o of_o building_n hospital_n and_o spital_n especial_o consider_v that_o building-money_n 1●82_n after_o the_o building_n be_v finish_v aught_o to_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o reparation_n of_o church_n and_o purchase_v of_o ornament_n for_o they_o and_o other_o work_n of_o charity_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v never_o any_o alteration_n for_o that_o of_o the_o party_n which_o be_v to_o make_v the_o account_n but_o it_o be_v always_o leave_v to_o the_o officer_n royal_a nor_o be_v the_o clergy_n suffer_v to_o intermeddle_v in_o the_o account_n of_o building-money_n and_o in_o case_n they_o shall_v attempt_v there_o may_v be_v put_v in_o a_o appeal_n as_o from_o abuse_n as_o it_o be_v judge_v by_o a_o arrest_n in_o june_n 1550._o and_o as_o for_o the_o account_n of_o hospital_n they_o be_v to_o be_v make_v also_o before_o the_o king_n officer_n notwithstanding_o that_o by_o the_o will_n of_o the_o founder_n part_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o those_o hospital_n be_v design_v and_o appoint_v for_o divine_a service_n according_a to_o a_o edict_n of_o king_n francis_n ann_n 1545._o and_o which_o must_v be_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o case_n the_o bishop_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n have_v the_o right_n of_o overseeing_a the_o administration_n of_o those_o hospital_n yet_o they_o retain_v unto_o themselves_o the_o hear_v of_o the_o account_n aswell_o as_o lay_v patron_n do_v howsoever_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o four_o at_o the_o least_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a inhabitant_n of_o the_o place_n or_o parish_n must_v be_v call_v unto_o they_o as_o it_o be_v order_v by_o the_o six_o article_n of_o the_o ordinance_n of_o hospital_n make_v 1561._o from_o which_o the_o ten_o article_n of_o that_o of_o melun_n 1580_o do_v no_o way_n derogate_v which_o must_v be_v expound_v by_o the_o former_a in_o that_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n shall_v be_v maintain_v in_o their_o right_n which_o they_o have_v of_o look_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o hospital_n and_o spital_n and_o take_v the_o account_n of_o their_o revenue_n where_o that_o must_v be_v repeat_v which_o be_v in_o the_o precedent_a edict_n the_o most_o eminent_a inhabitant_n etc._n etc._n be_v call_v thereunto_o forasmuch_o as_o this_o latter_a a●mes_n at_o the_o preserve_n and_o confirm_v the_o right_a of_o the_o clergy_n not_o at_o the_o exclude_v of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o place_n or_o parish_n from_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o account_n 40_o last_o the_o remedy_n of_o appeal_n be_v not_o admit_v to_o take_v place_n against_o such_o decree_n as_o the_o bishop_n shall_v make_v for_o the_o repair_n of_o cloister_n and_o monastery_n but_o they_o must_v be_v forthwith_o put_v in_o execution_n without_o all_o appeal_n yea_o and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n be_v command_v upon_o paine●_n of_o excommunication_n to_o assist_v they_o in_o which_o there_o be_v many_o grievance_n first_o in_o that_o the_o judge_n royal_a as_o also_o the_o bailiff_n and_o steward_n be_v deprive_v of_o that_o cognizance_n which_o belong_v unto_o they_o before_o all_o other_o in_o case_n of_o such_o reparation_n as_o we_o have_v make_v it_o plain_o already_o second_o in_o that_o the_o parliament_n be_v deprive_v of_o those_o appeal_n which_o will_v be_v make_v unto_o they_o from_o the_o inferior_a judge_n three_o in_o that_o no_o appeal_n can_v be_v make_v unto_o they_o as_o from_o abuse_n from_o the_o sentence_n of_o bishop_n and_o four_a in_o that_o the_o king_n officer_n be_v make_v liable_a to_o excommunication_n contrary_a to_o that_o privilege_n which_o have_v be_v grant_v unto_o they_o and_o which_o they_o have_v ever_o enjoy_v whereof_o we_o shall_v speak_v in_o another_o place_n now_o if_o this_o council_n take_v place_n we_o must_v make_v account_n that_o appeal_v as_o from_o abuse_n be_v utter_o abolish_v as_o we_o have_v say_v already_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o concern_v france_n not_o a_o little_a inasmuch_o a●_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a weapon_n wherewith_o our_o predecessor_n have_v fight_v against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o ecclesiastiques_n chap._n iu._n of_o exemption_n exemption_n 1_o another_o mean_n which_o the_o council_n use_v to_o hook_n in_o to_o the_o pope_n the_o jurisdiction_n over_o other_o man_n be_v the_o exemption_n grant_v to_o church_n chapter_n corpse_n college_n abbey_n and_o monastery_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o their_o lawful_a prelate_n and_o ordinary_n the_o bishop_n and_o metropolitan_o our_o trent_n father_n know_v well_o enough_o and_o confess_v that_o such_o exemption_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o much_o evil_n for_o say_v they_o 8._o they_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o person_n exempt_v to_o live_v more_o dissolute_o and_o more_o at_o their_o liberty_n this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o we_o must_v add_v that_o they_o take_v away_o the_o reverence_n and_o obedience_n which_o the_o exempt_v owe_v unto_o their_o prelate_n and_o ordinary_n and_o make_v they_o think_v themselves_o as_o good_a man_n as_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o their_o superior_n general_n that_o the_o correction_n and_o punish_v of_o fault_n and_o excess_n be_v hereby_o ●indred_n and_o bring_v to_o nothing_o that_o they_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o exempt_v can_v be_v judge_v but_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o can_v do_v it_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o remoteness_n from_o they_o that_o they_o rob_v man_n of_o the_o mean_n of_o do_v many_o good_a work_n in_o religion_n that_o they_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o many_o scandal_n that_o those_o to_o who_o they_o be_v grant_v abuse_v their_o privilege_n that_o they_o draw_v after_o they_o the_o ruin_n of_o monastery_n be_v rather_o a_o burden_n than_o a_o honour_n or_o profit_n to_o they_o all_o these_o reason_n be_v allege_v by_o william_n durant_n bishop_n of_o mende_n in_o gevauldan_n in_o the_o time_n of_o clement_n the_o five_o to_o persuade_v the_o general_n council_n of_o vienna_n to_o abolish_v such_o exemption_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o complaint_n have_v be_v make_v against_o they_o at_o several_a time_n 2_o saint_n bernard_n speak_v very_o free_o of_o they_o to_o eugenius_n the_o three_o in_o those_o book_n which_o he_o dedicate_v unto_o he_o eugenium_fw-la abbat_n say_v he_o be_v exempt_v from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o their_o bishop_n bishop_n from_o their_o archbishop_n archbishop_n from_o their_o patriarch_n or_o primat_n do_v this_o manner_n of_o deal_n seem_v good_a to_o you_o it_o be_v strange_a if_o it_o can_v be_v excuse_v or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o it_o in_o so_o do_v you_o show_v that_o you_o have_v plenitude_n of_o power_n but_o perhaps_o not_o of_o justice_n he_o speak_v yet_o more_o of_o it_o but_o this_o be_v sufficient_a 3_o cardinal_n de_fw-fr alliaco_fw-it makes_z a_o complaint_n of_o they_o likewise_o and_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o a_o course_n shall_v be_v take_v with_o they_o eccles._n add_v that_o many_o devout_a zealous_a man_n in_o the_o church_n have_v a_o long_a time_n complain_v of_o they_o as_o saint_n bernard_n in_o a_o book_n by_o he_o direct_v to_o pope_n eugenius_n and_o other_o john_n of_o paris_n a_o divine_a of_o the_o order_n of_o predicant_o urge_v the_o same_o saint_n bernard_n 19_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v consider_v say_v he_o that_o saint_n
council_n 8_o but_o not_o obtain_v 9_o exemption_n how_o use_v in_o france_n chap._n v._o p._n 327._o 1_o the_o power_n of_o grant_v ●_z for_o criminal_a matter_n 2_o allow_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o this_o council_n 3_o unknown_a to_o antiquity_n 4_o be_v the_o true_a right_n of_o prince_n chap._n vi_o p._n 328●_n 1_o the_o number_n of_o papal_a constitution_n and_o decree_n complain_v of_o to_o this_o council_n 2_o yet_o not_o abate_v but_o all_o confirm_v by_o it_o 3_o many_o whereof_o be_v not_o receive_v before_o 4,5_o ancient_a complaint_n make_v against_o they_o 6_o by_o what_o degree_n pope_n usurp_v upon_o prince_n by_o them●_n 8,9_o many_o pretend_a decretal_n be_v supposititious_a 15_o many_o abusive_a 17_o and_o derogatory_n to_o the_o imperial_a law_n 19_o the_o worst_a pope_n author_n of_o they_o and_o the_o great_a enemy_n to_o prince_n chap._n vii_o p._n 335._o 1_o the_o censure_n of_o all_o book_n leave_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o this_o council_n 2_o the_o extent_n o●_n this_o power_n and_o mystery_n of_o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la 3,4_o wherein_o they_o condemn_v all_o author_n that_o stand_v for_o the_o right_n of_o secular_a prince_n 5_o or_o of_o counsel_n against_o pope_n 6_o and_o all_o that_o have_v write_v against_o the_o abuse_n of_o their_o court_n 7,8_o etc._n etc._n and_o by_o the_o like_a reason_n they_o may_v condemn_v all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o law_n of_o prince_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n book_n vii_o chap._n i._o p._n 341._o 1_o that_o this_o council_n tend_v to_o the_o depress_v and_o abase_v the_o authority_n of_o christian_a prince_n 2_o by_o rob_v they_o of_o their_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n 3_o especial_o in_o case_n of_o duel_n that_o a_o council_n have_v no_o coactive_a jurisdiction_n over_o prince_n this_o prove_v by_o authority_n of_o scripture_n 4_o and_o ancient_a father_n 5_o and_o popish_a author_n 6_o all_o coactive_a jurisdiction_n derive_v from_o prince_n 7,8_o over_o the_o clergy_n various_o exercise_v by_o the_o imperial_a law_n 9_o what_o use_v the_o pope_n make_v of_o they_o 10_o they_o do_v not_o bind_v present_a prince_n chap._n ii_o p._n 346._o 1_o that_o a_o council_n have_v no_o power_n in_o temporal_a matter_n prove_v by_o authority_n of_o father_n against_o the_o trent_n council_n 3_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o pope_n 5,6.7_o and_o ancient_a counsel_n 8_o by_o reason_n 10_o secular_a prince_n may_v require_v subsidy_n of_o clergy_n man_n 11_o even_o by_o the_o canon_n law_n 12_o if_o they_o have_v any_o exemptions●_n 13_o as_o they_o have_v many_o 14_o they_o be_v first_o grant_v by_o prince_n such_o subsidy_n injust_o prohibit_v by_o this_o council_n 15,16_o and_o some_o former_a pope_n chap._n iii_o p._n 352._o 1_o excommunication_n abuse_v by_o pope_n against_o prince_n 2_o king_n shall_v not_o easy_o be_v excommunicate_v 3_o as_o they_o be_v by_o this_o council_n 4_o the_o king_n of_o france_n claim_v a_o privilege_n and_o exemption_n from_o excommunication_n 5_o and_o why_o 7,8,9_o this_o privilege_n acknowledge_v by_o pope_n 10_o maintain_v by_o parliament_n 11_o confirm_v by_o pope_n chap._n iu._n p._n 355._o 1_o this_o council_n use_v command_v term_n to_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o make_v they_o but_o the_o bishop_n officer_n and_o executioner_n of_o their_o decree_n 2_o contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o former_a counsel_n 3,4_o etc._n etc._n this_o make_v prince_n inferior_a to_o priest_n in_o point_n of_o honour_n 9_o how_o much_o the_o pope_n be_v great_a than_o the_o emperor_n 11_o 12_o the_o humility_n of_o ancient_a pope_n and_o the_o great_a respect_n they_o use_v to_o king_n and_o emperor_n chap._n v._o p._n 359._o 1_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n in_o the_o church_n and_o over_o the_o clergy_n 2_o more_o in_o right_n than_o in_o fact_n 3,4,5_o they_o be_v the_o patron_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o church_n 6_o and_o have_v power_n to_o reform_v it_o 7,8,9_o this_o power_n confess_v by_o pope_n 10,11_o and_o popish_a writer_n 12,13_o exercise_v by_o emperor_n 14,15_o etc._n etc._n and_o king_n of_o france_n chap._n vi_o p._n 365._o 1_o that_o emperor_n and_o king_n have_v in_o all_o age_n make_v law_n of_o ecclesiastical_a polity_n and_o discipline_n 3,4_o both_o before_o christ_n 5,6_o and_o since_o 7_o that_o they_o have_v power_n so_o to_o do_v but_o not_o to_o administer_v the_o word_n or_o sacrament_n 8_o especial_o the_o emperor_n the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o france_n 9_o 10_o etc._n etc._n this_o power_n of_o prince_n confess_v by_o counsel_n and_o admit_v by_o pope_n 16_o who_o become_v suitor_n to_o they_o in_o that_o behalf_n 17,18_o and_o promoter_n of_o their_o ordinance_n chap._n vii_o p._n 371._o 1_o the_o king_n of_o france_n wrong_v by_o this_o council_n i●_n point_n of_o precedence_n before_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n 2_o 3_o the_o quarrel_n betwixt_o their_o ambassador_n at_o trent_n about_o it_o 4_o the_o spanish_a party_n favour_v by_o the_o pope_n 5,6,7,8_o and_o by_o the_o council_n 10,11_o the_o king_n of_o france_n his_o right_n prove_v by_o counsel_n 13_o doctor_n 14_o even_n spaniard_n 15_o the_o pope_n prevarication_n in_o the_o cause_n 16_o which_o be_v not_o yet_o decide_v chap._n viii_o p._n 377._o 1_o indult_n and_o expectative_a grace_n utter_o prohibit_v by_o this_o council_n 2_o but_o tolerate_v by_o the_o law_n of_o france_n and_o practise_v there_o 4_o all_o power_n in_o excommunication_n either_o for_o procure_v or_o prohibit_v they_o take_v from_o civil_a court_n and_o magistrate_n by_o this_o council_n 5_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o france_n where_o the_o king_n by_o their_o officer_n do_v decree_n they_o 6_o or_o prohibit_v the_o execution_n of_o they_o 7_o thereby_o curb_v the_o attempt_n of_o pope_n 8_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o lie_v judge_n 9_o censure_n and_o excommunication_n abuse_v by_o pope_n 10_o and_o therefore_o oppose_v by_o prince_n 11_o a_o reformation_n require_v at_o trent_n 12,13,14_o and_o before_o that_o they_o may_v be_v use_v for_o petty_a matter_n 16_o yet_o no_o remedy_n obtain_v chap._n ix_o p._n 383._o 1_o this_o council_n dispose_v of_o the_o good_n of_o religious_a person_n contrary_n to_o law_n 2_o give_v mendicant_n leave_v to_o possess_v land_n contrary_a to_o their_o order_n and_o its_o own_o decree_n 3_o and_o the_o law_n of_o france_n notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n 4_o this_o council_n cancel_v some_o lease_n of_o church_n land_n injust_o because_o without_o the_o king_n leave_n 5_o it_o ordain_v about_o commutation_n of_o last_o will_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o france_n chap._n x._o p._n 385._o 1_o this_o council_n command_v all_o clergy_n man_n to_o receive_v the_o decree_n without_o regard_n to_o their_o prince_n consent_n 2_o contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o other_o counsel_n 3_o it_o denounce_v excommunication_n in_o case_n of_o refusal_n require_v a_o oath_n of_o obedience_n disallows_n toleration_n of_o religion_n 4_o approve_v violence_n in_o root_a out_o heresy_n 5,6_o and_o ordain_v the_o inquisition_n for_o they_o 7_o contrary_a to_o the_o edict_n of_o pacification_n in_o france_n 8_o the_o prejudices_fw-la do_v by_o this_o council_n admit_v of_o no_o qualification_n 9_o and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v just_o reject_v fault_n escape_v pag._n line_n fault_n correction_n 24._o 37._o precede_v preside_v 31._o 18._o to_o stain_v ●_o to_o stain_n 40._o 36._o trent_n tyre_n 41._o 34._o rhegno_fw-la rhegino_n 58._o 9_o a._n deal_n 64._o 21._o holiness_n highness_n  _fw-fr 32._o discord_n disorder_n 71._o 43._o of_o chartres_n of_o the_o charterhouse_n et_fw-fr 224._o 5._o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr 75._o 24._o fontanus_n fontanus_n have_v put_v  _fw-fr marg_n alberius_n albericus_fw-la 81._o 3._o exequeter_fw-la one_o yeeros_fw-la exchequer_n one_o year_n 83._o marg_n valoterran_n volaterran_n 86._o 41._o prince_n province_n 94._o 33._o this_o in_o this_o 95._o 9_o apostle_n apostle_n 101._o 40._o rank_n instance_n 109._o 24._o give_v have_v 121._o 46._o write_v go_v 122._o 53._o avarus_fw-la alvarus_n 125._o 30._o in_o into_o 130._o 46._o at_o as_o 159._o marg_n radericus_fw-la radenicus_fw-la 166._o 34._o sismand_n sisenand_n 187._o 10._o emp●rour_n emperor_n 191._o 27._o assemble_v ascribe_v to_o he_o 194._o 13._o command_v they_o that_o deal_n 222._o 22._o to_o wit_n deal_n 241._o 2._o that_o by_o that_o 251._o 36._o find_v found_v 253._o 26._o bless_a the_o bless_a 257._o 47._o the._n at_o the._n 265._o 5._o they_o a_o the._n and._n 269._o 3._o to_o pope_n to_o the_o pope_n 278._o 16._o monarchy_n monarch_n 288._o 42._o you_o yond_o 293._o 4._o doctor_n ring_n doctor_n king_n  _fw-fr 5._o eight_o right_n  _fw-fr 33._o be_v they_o be_v 296._o 42._o church_n clutch_n 307._o 21._o honour_n under_o order_n over_o 310._o 41._o judge_n royal_a ordinary_n ordinary_a judge_n royal_a
reform_v by_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o by_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o do_v their_o duty_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n i●_n they_o do_v somewhat_o for_o he_o to_o who_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o such_o a_o strict_a oath_n and_o who_o flatter_v and_o woo_v they_o extreme_o to_o do_v the_o deed_n but_o when_o the_o churchman_n of_o our_o age_n especial_o do_v any_o famous_a exploit_n against_o the_o pope_n this_o be_v news_n indeed_o both_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o command_n which_o he_o have_v get_v over_o they_o and_o of_o the_o fear_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v lest_o they_o shall_v be_v sentence_v for_o heretic_n in_o these_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v always_o have_v recourse_n to_o they_o when_o they_o intend_v to_o do_v some_o ill_a office_n to_o our_o king_n and_o kingdom_n boniface_n the_o eight_o by_o a_o glose_v letter_n of_o his_o writ_n unto_o they_o endeavour_n to_o make_v they_o approve_v his_o injust_a proceed_n against_o philip_n the_o fair_a where_o he_o say_v among_o other_o thing_n francia_fw-la those_o who_o hold_v that_o temporal_a matter_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o spiritual_a do_v not_o they_o go_v about_o to_o make_v two_o prince_n he_o complain_v also_o of_o the_o parliament_n hold_v at_o paris_n where_o it_o be_v enact_v say_v he_o by_o underhand_a and_o beg_v voice_n that_o none_o shall_v appear_v before_o he_o upon_o the_o summons_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a he_o complain_v also_o of_o the_o report_n which_o be_v make_v to_o that_o assembly_n by_o m._n peter_n flotte_n who_o he_o call_v belial_n half_a blind_a in_o body_n and_o quite_o in_o understanding_n this_o be_v the_o man_n who_o be_v send_v in_o ambassage_n unto_o he_o by_o king_n philip_n to_o that_o say_n of_o he_o we_o have_v both_o the_o one_o power_n and_o the_o other_o make_v this_o reply_n in_o behalf_n of_o his_o master●_n you_o be_v verbal_a but_o we_o be_v real_a 1301._o as_o it_o be_v relate_v by_o a_o english_a historian_n 17_o innocent_n the_o three_o do_v the_o like_a in_o his_o scuffle_n with_o philippus_n augustus_n his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n be_v put_v among_o the_o decretal_n wherein_o he_o omit_v no_o art_n to_o nuzle_v they_o up_o and_o persuade_v they_o that_o his_o proceed_n against_o the_o king_n and_o put_v their_o kingdom_n under_o a_o interdict_v be_v just_a as_o the_o learned_a cujacius_n have_v very_o well_o observe_v and_o indeed_o his_o project_n thrive_v so_o well_o that_o he_o win_v their_o consent_n at_o last_o hark_v how_o a_o french_a historian_n of_o we_o speak_v of_o it_o 1099._o the_o whole_a country_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n be_v interdict_v at_o which_o the_o king_n be_v high_o offend_v after_o he_o have_v notice_n of_o it_o he_o strip_v all_o his_o bishop_n out_o of_o their_o bishopricke_n because_o they_o have_v consent_v to_o that_o interdict_v and_o command_v that_o their_o canon_n and_o clerk_n shall_v be_v put_v out_o of_o their_o live_n expel_v out_o of_o his_o dominion_n and_o their_o good_n confiscate_v he_o discharge_v also_o the_o parish_n priest_n and_o seize_v upon_o their_o good_n the_o french_a bishop_n at_o first_o do_v stiff_o oppose_v gregory_n the_o four_o who_o side_v with_o the_o child_n against_o the_o father_n be_v mind_v to_o come_v into_o france_n to_o excommunicate_a lewes_n the_o gentle_a and_o they_o have_v put_v on_o this_o resolution_n 14._o to_o send_v he_o home_o again_o excommunicate_v if_o he_o come_v there_o to_o excommunicate_v i●_n but_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o he_o have_v such_o a_o stroke_n over_o they_o that_o he_o make_v they_o not_o only_o 44._o abandon_v but_o depose_v he_o he_o be_v vex_v by_o all_o his_o bishop_n say_v a_o ancient_a historian_n and_o more_o particular_o by_o they_o who_o be_v raise_v to_o those_o dignity_n from_o a_o low_a degree_n and_o such_o as_o come_v out_o of_o barbarous_a country_n be_v prefer_v to_o that_o height_n of_o honour_n and_o he_o afterward_o add_v they_o say_v and_o do_v such_o thing_n as_o the_o like_a be_v never_o hear_v of_o use_v reproachful_a speech_n towards_o he_o they_o take_v his_o sword_n from_o his_o side_n upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o wrap_v it_o in_o a_o sackcloth_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o not_o long_o after_o repent_v themselves_o of_o their_o proceed_n they_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o former_a dignity_n of_o which_o they_o have_v despoil_v he_o and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o rheims_n ebon_n by_o name_n who_o have_v be_v the_o main_a man_n among_o they_o declare_v himself_o in_o writing_n ibid._n that_o whatsoever_o have_v be_v attempt_v against_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v against_o all_o right_a and_o reason_n and_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o accuse_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n for_o this_o for_o many_o of_o they_o be_v offend_v with_o it_o and_o particular_o those_o of_o the_o province_n of_o belgia_n depose_v ebon_n their_o archbishop_n upon_o this_o occasion_n condemn_v his_o proceed_n herein_o but_o let_v we_o now_o ret●rne_v to_o our_o intend_a subject_n 18_o one_o of_o the_o king_n lieutenant_n general_a for_o administration_n of_o justice_n in_o a_o assembly_n of_o the_o state_n particular_a under_o the_o late_a king_n 1588._o for_o the_o reestablish_n say_v he_o and_o better_o settle_v of_o christian_a religion_n within_o this_o kingdom_n ●●er●_n our_o suit_n unto_o the_o king_n be_v that_o like_o a_o most_o christian_n and_o elder_a son_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o will_v receive_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v inviolable_o observe_v by_o all_o his_o subject_n if_o any_o here_o will_v interpose_v and_o tell_v i_o that_o there_o be_v some_o article_n in_o it_o which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n and_o some_o other_o which_o seem_v too_o harsh_a and_o against_o the_o form_n of_o justice_n now_o use_v in_o france_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a may_n more_o wise_o advise_v of_o this_o in_o the_o assembly_n general_a of_o the_o state_n and_o if_o need_v so_o be_v communicate_v it_o with_o the_o other_o order_n to_o make_v a_o remonstrance_n thereof_o to_o our_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n by_o this_o mean_v all_o those_o edict_n which_o to_o the_o great_a regret_n of_o the_o king_n the_o prince_n and_o catholic_a subject_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n do_v tolerate_v this_o medley_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v repeal_v and_o abolish_v 19_o among_o those_o great_a disorder_n of_o this_o king_n reign_n this_o very_a council_n be_v call_v in_o question_n in_o the_o assembly_n at_o paris_n which_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o state_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o league_n where_o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o those_o who_o have_v shake_v off_o the_o royal_a yoke_n and_o undermine_v all_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n how_o distemper_v soever_o they_o be_v yet_o they_o have_v their_o judgement_n so_o sound_a as_o to_o discern_v a_o good_a many_o decree_n in_o that_o council_n which_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o this_o kingdom_n 1593._o as_o appear_v by_o the_o extract_n which_o be_v publish_v hereupon_o we_o may_v observe_v by_o the_o way_n that_o those_o who_o raise_v the_o most_o false_a and_o abominable_a calumny_n against_o the_o late_a king_n that_o ever_o be_v hear_v of_o in_o all_o their_o defamatory_n libel_n never_o object_v this_o unto_o he_o that_o he_o refuse_v to_o receive_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n i_o will_v use_v no_o other_o proof_n than_o of_o that_o damnable_a script_n hammer_v out_o in_o hell_n regno_fw-la of_o the_o just_a deposall_n of_o henry_n the_o three_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n which_o set_v down_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o excommunication_n make_v he_o a_o murderer_n a_o heretic_n a_o favourer_n of_o heretic_n simoniacal_a a_o sacrilegious_a approver_n of_o duel_n a_o profaner_n of_o religious_a person_n a_o confederate_a with_o heretic_n a_o spender_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o church_n without_o any_o leave_n from_o the_o pope_n a_o falsifier_n of_o the_o letter_n apostolic_a a_o superstitious_a fellow_n a_o deteiner_n of_o churchman_n but_o not_o one_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent●_n although_o he_o have_v in_o that_o point_n be_v disobedient_a to_o the_o pope_n will_n and_o make_v small_a account_n of_o his_o earnest_n and_o often_o request_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o speech_n which_o come_v to_o our_o hear_n be_v deliver_v in_o his_o behalf_n and_o upon_o his_o motion_n 20_o nay_o more_o council_n he_o do_v not_o receive_v so_o much_o as_o those_o very_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v no_o way_n repugnant_a to_o our_o liberty_n and_o
some_o place_n for_o that_o end_n make_v express_a mention_n of_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o place_n we_o be_v ready_a say_v he_o to_o assemble_v king_n prelate_n and_o prince_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a in_o some_o place_n of_o safety_n and_o the_o gloss_n upon_o this_o a_o judge_n shall_v appoint_v such_o a_o place_n or_o else_o there_o be_v a_o just_a cause_n of_o appeal_n although_o it_o be_v say_v that_o no_o appeal_n shall_v be_v admit_v 20_o ivo_n bishop_n of_o chartres_n complain_v of_o the_o pope_n legate_n 94._o because_o he_o have_v choose_v the_o city_n of_o bloys_n there_o to_o decide_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o chartres_n who_o can_v not_o repair_v thither_o with_o safety_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o populacy_n of_o that_o city_n 21_o the_o same_o bishop_n have_v a_o controversy_n with_o some_o of_o his_o clergy_n depend_v before_o the_o archbishop_n of_o sens_n his_o metropolitan_a 205●_n entreat_v he_o to_o appoint_v a_o place_n for_o judgement_n whither_o they_o may_v go_v and_o come_v with_o safety_n 22_o the_o legate_n we_o speak_v of_o have_v appoint_v a_o council_n consist_v of_o french_a bishop_n to_o meet_v at_o sens_n 166●_n for_o the_o absolution_n of_o king_n philip_n the_o first_o from_o the_o excommunication_n which_o be_v dart_v out_o against_o he_o by_o the_o pope_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o unlawful_a marriage_n he_o give_v he_o notice_n that_o he_o may_v have_v do_v better_a to_o have_v proceed_v to_o that_o absolution_n in_o another_o place_n than_o sens_n that_o so_o every_o one_o may_v have_v have_v mean_n to_o speak_v his_o opinion_n free_o council_n 23_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n do_v all_o agree_v that_o a_o exception_n against_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o place_n be_v pertinent_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v admitted●_n that_o it_o be_v good_a both_o by_o the_o civil_a law_n and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n that_o a_o man_n summon_v to_o a_o place_n where_o any_o danger_n threaten_v he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o appear_v nor_o to_o send_v his_o proctor_n and_o that_o a_o judge_n be_v bind_v to_o assign_v the_o party_n a_o place_n of_o safety_n for_o the_o hear_n of_o their_o cause_n matrimonio_fw-la otherwise_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n of_o appeal_n chap._n viii_o that_o all_o those_o who_o ought_v to_o have_v have_v a_o decisive_a or_o deliberative_a voice_n in_o the_o council_n be_v not_o call_v 1_o complaint_n be_v make_v also_o that_o all_o those_o who_o ought_v to_o have_v have_v a_o consultative_a or_o deliberative_a voice_n in_o the_o council_n be_v not_o call_v thereunto_o paul_n the_o three_o by_o his_o bull_n date_v in_o may_n 1542_o and_o pius_n the_o four_o by_o he_o in_o november_n 1560_o call_v none_o to_o that_o council_n to_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n but_o cardinal_n patriarch_n archbishop_n bishop_n abbat_n and_o general_n of_o order_n they_o do_v not_o mention_v in_o express_a term_n either_o the_o first_o or_o the_o last_o of_o these_o but_o yet_o they_o be_v comprehend_v under_o those_o word_n all_o other_o whosoever_o which_o be_v restrain_v to_o they_o alone_o for_o this_o sense_n the_o pope_n expositor_n put_v upon_o they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o form_n which_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n witness_n bellarmine_n 15._o and_o those_o who_o he_o urge_v nor_o be_v there_o any_o but_o those_o who_o have_v voice_n in_o the_o chapter_n of_o the_o council_n all_o the_o petty_a ecclesiastique_n have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v there_o but_o to_o pick_v their_o finger_n or_o to_o pen_v neat_a speech_n of_o such_o matter_n as_o be_v there_o treat_v of_o but_o for_o decree_n those_o lettuce_n be_v not_o for_o their_o lip_n all_o this_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o doctor_n themselves_o yea_o and_o defend_v too_o the_o pope_n who_o i_o name_v exhort_v those_o who_o they_o call_v thither_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o fail_v to_o come_v there_o yea_o they_o strait_o enjoin_v they_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o oath_n which_o they_o have_v take_v to_o they_o and_o to_o the_o holy_a see_v which_o can_v be_v refer_v neither_o to_o protestants●_n nor_o any_o other_o that_o have_v draw_v back_o from_o their_o obedience_n to_o he_o nor_o yet_o to_o lay_v man_n howsoever_o obedient_a 2_o hence_o two_o complaint_n arise_v one_o that_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n of_o the_o protestant_n side_n be_v they_o can_v not_o have_v a_o deliberative_a voice_n there_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v to_o go_v thither_o the_o other_o that_o the_o laique_n of_o both_o religions●_n have_v ground_n of_o complaint_n be_v exclude_v from_o this_o judgement_n as_o for_o the_o first●_o when_o any_o controversy_n arise_v diverse_a course_n have_v be_v take_v to_o compose_v the_o difference_n in_o religion_n sometime_o the_o emperor_n have_v appoint_v judge_n before_o who_o both_o party_n come_v and_o discuss_v their_o opinion_n free_o ph●tinus_n bishop_n of_o smyrna_n be_v accuse_v for_o a_o heretic_n by_o the_o council_n there_o be_v afterward_o admit_v to_o dispute_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n ●_o in_o which_o dispute_n say_v sozomen_n certain_a judge_n be_v ordain_v for_o precedent_n of_o the_o council_n who_o from_o that_o time_n forward_o be_v account_v man_n of_o prime_a rank_n in_o the_o palace_n both_o for_o knowledge_n and_o dignity_n after_o many_o objection_n and_o answer_n pro_fw-la and_o con_v basil_n bishop_n of_o ancyra_n who_o defend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n get_v the_o victory_n and_o photinus_n be_v condemn_v and_o send_v into_o banishment_n time_n at_o the_o general_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o consist_v of_o six_o hundred_o bishop_n there_o be_v diverse_a officer_n of_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n and_o marcian_n and_o a_o good_a number_n of_o senator_n that_o come_v to_o preside_v there_o yea_o and_o to_o judge_v of_o all_o difference_n and_o controversy_n conciliorum_fw-la even_o such_o as_o concern_v faith_n and_o religion_n who_o behave_v themselves_o so_o that_o in_o some_o point_n they_o sway_v that_o great_a company_n of_o bishop_n by_o their_o advice_n as_o we_o have_v observe_v more_o particular_o in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o presidency_n in_o counsel_n honorius_n the_o emperor_n to_o lay_v the_o quarrel_n that_o be_v in_o his_o time_n between_o the_o catholic_n &_o the_o donatist_n in_o africa_a habitae●_n call_v they_o all_o together_o at_o carthage_n and_o depute_a marcellinus_n one_o of_o his_o officer_n to_o be_v judge_n who_o after_o he_o have_v hear_v all_o along_o the_o reason_n on_o both_o side_n pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o the_o donatist_n wherein_o he_o say_v among_o other_o thing_n 3_o to_o the_o end_n that_o apparent_a error_n may_v undergo_v the_o yoke_n of_o reveal_v truth_n finem_fw-la by_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o present_a edict_n i_o advise_v all_o man_n of_o what_o condition_n soever_o landlord_n steward_n and_o farmer_n as_o well_o which_o hold_v of_o the_o crown_n as_o of_o private_a possession_n with_o the_o ancient_n in_o all_o place_n that_o not_o forget_v the_o law_n their_o own_o dignity_n honour_n and_o safeguard_n they_o do_v their_o endeavour_n to_o hinder_v all_o conventicle_n of_o the_o donatist_n in_o all_o town_n whatsoever_o who_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o surrender_v up_o to_o the_o catholic_n those_o church_n which_o i_o allow_v they_o of_o courtesy_n until_o the_o day_n of_o sentence_n without_o commission_n from_o the_o emperor_n 4_o possidius_n august_n that_o write_v the_o life_n of_o st._n austin_n report_v as_o much_o in_o plain_a term_n this_o happen_v main_o say_v he_o by_o occasion_n of_o the_o conference_n which_o be_v at_o carthage_n between_o all_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o the_o donatist_n by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o emperor_n honorius_n who_o send_v marcellinus_n the_o tribune_n into_o africa_n to_o be_v judge_n in_o that_o collation_n in_o which_o controversy_n the_o donatist_n be_v thorough_o confute_v and_o convince_v of_o error_n by_o the_o catholic_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n he_o add_v moreover_o that_o they_o appeal_v from_o that_o sentence_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o that_o they_o be_v afterward_o condemn_v by_o he_o and_o declare_v heretic_n 5_o pope_n miltiades_n also_o with_o some_o other_o bishop_n 162●_n have_v pass_v sentence_n in_o that_o cause_n but_o the_o donatist_n being_n not_o well_o content_a with_o his_o judgement_n the_o emperor_n remit_v they_o afterward_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o arles_n as_o st._n austin_n relate_v that_o which_o cardinal_n jacobatius_n a_o stickler_n for_o the_o pope_n authority_n say_v be_v very_o remarkable_a that_o lay-man_n be_v sometime_o admit_v to_o counsel_n to_o be_v judge_n betwixt_o those_o that_o canvas_v some_o deep_a point_n 6._o hereupon_o say_v he_o in_o a_o synod_n hold_v in_o a_o council_n before_o constantine_n and_o helena_n where_o it_o be_v dispute_v whether_o
put_v up_o certain_a article_n in_o some_o point_n agree_v with_o these_o but_o in_o number_n far_o more_o which_o they_o impart_v to_o mr._n francis_n cheregat_n pope_n adrian_n the_o 6_o his_o legate_n upon_o the_o declaration_n which_o he_o make_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o adrian_n that_o for_o appease_v difference_n in_o religion_n and_o reform_v of_o abuse_n a_o free_a council_n shall_v be_v call_v germany_n he_o depart_v soon_o than_o any_o man_n expect_v it_o be_v decree_v to_o send_v they_o to_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v provide_v for_o their_o just_a demand_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n among_o other_o thing_n they_o complain_v against_o the_o forbid_a of_o meat_n and_o marriage_n at_o certain_a time_n of_o those_o mercenary_a dispensation_n whereby_o all_o that_o great_a rigour_n be_v remit_v for_o a_o little_a money_n against_o the_o abuse_n of_o indulgence_n by_o which_o mean_v germany_n have_v be_v poll_v and_o impoverish_v sin_n remit_v as_o well_o future_a as_o by_o past_a soul_n deliver_v out_o of_o purgatory_n remedy_n apply_v to_o all_o disease_n by_o promise_v the_o assistance_n of_o some_o particular_a saint_n against_o the_o weaken_n of_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n by_o draw_v all_o to_o rome_n and_o that_o at_o the_o suit_n of_o lay_v man_n nay_o the_o utter_a extirpation_n of_o it_o by_o the_o pope_n grant_v of_o conservator_n or_o send_v of_o commissary_n against_o the_o exemption_n and_o immunity_n grant_v to_o certain_a monastery_n by_o the_o pope_n the_o entrench_v upon_o the_o right_n of_o advowson_n the_o usurp_a of_o the_o benefice_n of_o such_o 〈◊〉_d die_v in_o the_o court_n of_o ro●●_n or_o in_o the_o way_n thither_o the_o trick_n that_o be_v use_v to_o hook_n in_o the_o benefice_n of_o such_o as_o converse_v with_o cardinal_n by_o pretend_v that_o they_o be_v of_o their_o table_n nay_o even_o such_o as_o never_o be_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n under_o colour_n that_o they_o be_v officer_n either_o of_o the_o pope_n household_n or_o of_o his_o court_n the_o many_o suit_n that_o be_v commence_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n about_o benefice_n even_o against_o those_o that_o have_v quiet_o enjoy_v they_o for_o many_o year_n who_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o age_n and_o indisposition_n of_o body_n be_v enforce_v to_o condescend_v to_o some_o injust_a condition_n to_o allow_v pension_n reversion_n and_o such_o like_a charge_n against_o the_o caution_n that_o be_v put_v in_o at_o rome_n for_o all_o kind_n of_o benefice_n the_o collation_n whereof_o do_v of_o right_a belong_v to_o the_o ordinary_n against_o reservation_n for_o the_o future_a confer_v of_o benefice_n upon_o stranger_n at_o rome_n and_o ignorant_a person_n as_o also_o the_o bestow_n of_o abbacy_n priorship_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o commendam_fw-la against_o the_o impunity_n of_o clergy_n man_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o privilege_n excommunication_n for_o petty_a matter_n and_o that_o even_o for_o the_o fault_n of_o neighbour_n which_o they_o can_v avoid_v against_o the_o interdict_a of_o a_o whole_a town_n or_o town_n upon_o the_o murder_n of_o a_o clerk_n against_o the_o excessive_a number_n of_o holy_a day_n against_o the_o abuse_n and_o attempt_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o point_n of_o jurisdiction_n almost_o in_o all_o cause_n and_o occasion_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o laity_n as_o also_o the_o abuse_n in_o excommunicate_v lay_v judge_n whereby_o they_o compel_v party_n to_o compound_v because_o they_o can_v have_v justice_n against_o the_o abuse_n commit_v by_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o the_o county_n palatine_n of_o his_o institution_n and_o other_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n which_o it_o be_v too_o long_o to_o set_v down_o 5_o the_o orator_n of_o albert_n duke_n of_o bavaria_n according_a to_o his_o master_n command_n allier_n be_v very_o earnest_a for_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o for_o the_o former_a he_o first_o tell_v the_o occasion_n before_o he_o ●●kes_v his_o demand_n in_o the_o last_o general_a visitation_n say_v he_o overall_a bau●ria_n whoredom_n be_v find_v so_o frequent_a that_o scarce_o three_o or_o four_o of_o a_o hundred_o but_o be_v either_o common_a whoremonger_n or_o private_o marry_v or_o else_o public_o and_o he_o afterwards_o add_v man_n of_o judgement_n and_o discretion_n who_o have_v mo●e_n nee●ly_o and_o exact_o examine_v these_o thing_n be_v of_o opinion_n ●h●t_o to_o supply_v t●e_v scarcity_n of_o a_o learned_a clergy_n it_o will_v be_v very_o ●●rd_a to_o m●ke_v ●p_n so_o many_o as_o to_o suffice_v for_o divine_a service_n especial_o at_o this_o time_n by_o any_o other_o mean_n ●nle●●e_v it_o be_v by_o admit_v unto_o holy_a order_n such_o marry_a man_n as_o have_v learning_n and_o ability_n to_o instruct_v other_o as_o it_o be_v accustom_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n es●●●i●lly_a ●hat_n they_o may_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o other_o point_n hark_v w●at_a he_o say_v there_o be_v not_o a_o few_o that_o depart_v from_o we_o and_o side_n with_o those_o sectary_n that_o stand_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o both_o kind_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v express_v for_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n but_o for_o one_o kind_n only_o not_o a_o word_n whereto_o we_o m●y_v add_v that_o the_o use_n of_o both_o kind_n be_v frequent_a and_o evident_a not_o only_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n demand_n but_o in_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n at_o this_o day_n yea_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o be_v not_o exempt_v ancient_o from_o this_o custom_n as_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v by_o divers_a testimony_n of_o history_n last_o after_o many_o discourse_n upon_o this_o subject_n he_o conclude_v 6_o that_o the_o most_o experience_a and_o wise_a catholic_n think_v that_o the_o people_n who_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o a_o desire_n of_o innovation_n can_v be_v keep_v in_o obedience_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a nor_o divert_v from_o a_o separation_n to_o which_o they_o be_v incline_v unless_o holy_a order_n and_o licence_n of_o preach_v be_v confer_v upon_o chaste_a marry_a man_n to_o take_v away_o the_o liquorish_a custom_n of_o keep_v concubine_n and_o also_o the_o use_n of_o both_o kind_n be_v allow_v to_o appease_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o incense_a multitude_n he_o go_v yet_o further_o and_o show_v that_o there_o be_v somewhat_o to_o be_v reform_v in_o matter_n of_o opinion_n and_o doctrine_n which_o notwithstanding_o he_o will_v not_o meddle_v with_o till_o such_o time_n as_o this_o entrance_n upon_o a_o reformation_n be_v bring_v to_o some_o issue_n consider_v the_o jealousy_n he_o have_v lest_o that_o design_n may_v breed_v some_o trouble_n but_o when_o this_o be_v do_v say_v he_o it_o will_v be_v then_o full_a time_n when_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v at_o quiet_a among_o we_o to_o enter_v upon_o a_o more_o solid_a consideration_n of_o doctrine_n and_o opinion_n now_o what_o manner_n of_o consideration_n that_o must_v be_v if_o it_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n my_o most_o illustrious_a prince_n be_v not_o peradventure_o the_o only_a man_n that_o know_v but_o be_v plain_o perceive_v by_o the_o common_a voice_n and_o that_o not_o to_o be_v slight_v of_o devout_a catholic_n concern_v this_o point_n and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o his_o holiness_n opinion_n be_v demand_v herein_o he_o can_v without_o much_o entreaty_n inform_v what_o have_v be_v any_o way_n treat_v of_o concern_v this_o matter_n 7_o many_o more_o request_n and_o demand_n be_v put_v up_o aswell_o by_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o forementioned_a prince_n as_o other_o which_o we_o can_v at_o this_o present_a se●_n down_o because_o we_o have_v not_o the_o act_n by_o we_o and_o it_o be_v far_o from_o our_o intention_n to_o speak_v any_o thing_n without_o proof_n we_o may_v here_o add_v the_o consultation_n which_o be_v make_v when_o the_o council_n be_v talk_v of_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o pope_n paul_n the_o three_o 1538_o 71_o by_o the_o cardinal_n and_o other_o ecclesiastiques_n in_o number_n nine_o depute_v for_o that_o purpose_n to_o advise_v he_o what_o be_v best_a to_o be_v do_v about_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o act_n they_o say_v express_o that_o all_o the_o discord_n abuse_n and_o disease_n now_o reign_v in_o the_o church_n which_o have_v bring_v it_o almost_o past_a hope_n of_o recovery_n proceed_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o conceit_n which_o their_o flatterer_n have_v buzz_v into_o they_o that_o they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o will_v that_o they_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o benefice_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o commit_v simony_n consider_v that_o the_o proprietary_n may_v lawful_o sell_v what_o belong_v
sous_fw-fr couleur_fw-fr de_fw-fr pieté_fw-fr l'_fw-mi eglise_fw-fr abonde_n en_fw-fr simony_n et_fw-fr y_fw-fr a_fw-fr multiplicité_fw-fr de_fw-fr maux_fw-fr que_fw-fr s'ils_fw-fr sont_fw-fr de_fw-fr duree_n nuiront_fw-fr à_fw-fr cette_fw-fr foy_fw-fr doree_fw-fr eclipseront_fw-fr la_fw-fr pureté_fw-fr tell_v the_o pope_n i_o pray_v from_o i_o that_o under_o colour_n of_o piety_n the_o church_n abound_v in_o simony_n and_o such_o a_o many_o fault_n there_o be_v that_o if_o not_o mend_v present_o they_o will_v eclipse_v the_o purity_n of_o faith_n that_o shine_v so_o glorious_o 12_o francis_n petrarch_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 1370_o under_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o four_o and_o pope_n gregory_n the_o 11_o reprove_v also_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o abuse_n speak_v of_o rome_n under_o the_o name_n of_o babylon_n and_o of_o his_o departure_n from_o thence_o in_o the_o 92_o sonnet_n he_o say_v de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr empia_fw-la babilonia_n and_o '_o è_fw-la fuggita_fw-la ogni_fw-la vergogna_fw-it and_o '_o ogni_fw-la bene_fw-la è_fw-la fuori_fw-la albergo_n di_fw-it dolour_n madre_fw-mi d'_fw-fr errori_fw-la son_n fuggit_fw-la '_o io_fw-it per_fw-la allungar_n la_fw-fr vita_fw-la from_o wicked_a babylon_n from_o whence_o be_v flee_v all_o modesty_n all_o goodness_n banish_v harbour_n of_o grief_n mother_n of_o error_n rife_a i_o flee_v in_o hope_n so_o to_o prolong_v my_o life_n in_o his_o 20_o epistle_n he_o style_v it_o the_o nest_n of_o treason_n wherein_o the_o venom_n of_o all_o the_o world_n be_v hatch_v and_o bring_v up_o 13_o francis_n zabarel_n cardinal_n of_o florence_n who_o live_v about_o 1400_o century_n in_o a_o tract_n which_o he_o write_v of_o the_o schism_n a_o little_a after_o the_o first_o pisan_n council_n speak_v thus_o concern_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o head_n which_o as_o he_o say_v must_v be_v do_v in_o a_o council_n these_o law_n be_v observable_a pontificio_fw-la insomuch_o that_o they_o be_v not_o well_o consider_v of_o by_o divers_a flatterer_n that_o will_v often_o heretofore_o humour_n the_o pope_n and_o who_o still_o persuade_v they_o they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o list_v yea_o even_o that_o which_o be_v not_o lawful_a and_o in_o that_o respect_n more_o than_o god_n himself_o for_o hence_o have_v ensue_v a_o infinite_a company_n of_o error_n insomuch_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v usurp_v all_o the_o right_a of_o inferior_a church_n so_o that_o other_o prelate_n be_v but_o cypher_n and_o if_o god_n do_v not_o provide_v for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v like_a to_o go_v to_o wrack_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n there_o be_v some_o hope_n of_o reformation_n if_o the_o council_n which_o be_v appoint_v in_o the_o church_n do_v indeed_o meet_v as_o it_o be_v report_v it_o shall_v in_o which_o assembly_n order_n must_v be_v take_v not_o only_o for_o the_o present_a schism_n but_o for_o the_o future_a also_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v so_o moderate_v that_o inferior_a power_n be_v not_o overthrow_v and_o that_o from_o henceforth_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o do_v what_o he_o will_v but_o what_o be_v lawful_a 14_o at_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n there_o be_v article_n put_v up_o by_o divers_a natition_n about_o the_o point_n of_o reformation_n 40._o wherein_o it_o be_v demand_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o reformation_n of_o the_o head_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n whereupon_o be_v enact_v this_o good_a decree_n that_o the_o pope_n who_o they_o shall_v create_v together_o with_o the_o council_n or_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v depute_v by_o every_o nation_n shall_v proceed_v to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o head_n the_o member_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n according_a to_o equity_n and_o the_o good_a government_n of_o the_o church_n before_o the_o break_n up_o of_o the_o council_n but_o pope_n martin_n the_o fif●h_o be_v elect_v by_o they_o do_v ease_v they_o of_o that_o trouble_n martino●_n put_v off_o the_o reformation_n till_o another_o time_n to_o the_o great_a regret_n of_o many_o see_v it_o be_v ever_o to_o begin_v anew_o 15_o the_o cardinal_n of_o cambray_n who_o live_v about_o 1414_o 1._o and_o be_v at_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n in_o a_o certain_a treatise_n of_o he_o of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n after_o he_o have_v show_v the_o good_a that_o come_v of_o the_o celebration_n and_o frequency_n of_o general_a counsel_n he_o adds●_n the_o second_o consideration_n be_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o aught_o to_o be_v reform_v in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n of_o rome_n 2._o and_o he_o afterward_o speak_v of_o the_o abuse_n of_o exaction_n excommunication_n the_o multitude_n of_o canon_n and_o decretal_n presentation_n to_o benefice_n election_n to_o dignity_n grant_v of_o exemption_n and_o many_o such_o like_a excess_n which_o say_v he_o it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o to_o relate_v which_o he_o desire_v may_v be_v reform_v 16_o mr._n john_n gerson_n chancellor_n of_o paris_n who_o be_v also_o at_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n in_o a_o sermon_n make_v by_o he_o upon_o the_o voyage_n of_o the_o emperor_n directione_n say_v it_o be_v expedient_a to_o do_v so_o now_o before_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o many_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o state_n general_a of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o pope_n abuse_n by_o too_o much_o use_v the_o plenitude_n of_o their_o power_n as_o in_o this_o that_o they_o will_v never_o keep_v any_o general_a counsel_n nor_o suffer_v inferior_a prelate_n to_o enjoy_v their_o ordinary_a right_n wherein_o they_o have_v manifest_o err_v without_o any_o manifest_a reason_n or_o convenience_n sometime_o disannul_v the_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n sometime_o alter_v they_o sometime_o expound_v they_o at_o their_o pleasure_n sometime_o grant_v privilege_n and_o exemption_n 17_o nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangiis_fw-la eccles._n one_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o eloquent_a divine_n of_o his_o time_n who_o be_v contemporary_a with_o mr._n gerson_n speak_v also_o very_o bitter_o against_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n in_o divers_a tract_n but_o especial_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ruina_fw-la &_o reparatione_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la i_o shall_v set_v down_o some_o passage_n in_o general_a term_n first_o say_v he_o let_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o head_n upon_o who_o all_o the_o rest_n depend_v he_o afterward_o add_v for_o the_o supreme_a bishop_n that_o i_o may_v come_v to_o they_o in_o the_o last_o place_n who_o by_o how_o much_o they_o see_v themselves_o rank_v above_o other_o in_o greatness_n and_o authority_n r●me_n by_o so_o much_o they_o labour_v the_o more_o to_o overthrow_v they_o out_o of_o a_o domineer_a humour_n for_o the_o enlarge_n of_o their_o primacy_n and_o supreme_a power_n consider_v that_o the_o commodity_n of_o the_o bishoprique_n of_o rome_n and_o s._n peter_n patrimony_n which_o be_v very_o large_a and_o above_o any_o kingdom_n though_o it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o curtal_v by_o their_o negligence_n can_v no_o way_n suffice_v to_o maintain_v the_o greatness_n of_o their_o state_n which_o they_o have_v purpose_v to_o raise_v high_a enough_o above_o all_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n in_o the_o world_n have_v cast_v themselves_o into_o those_o other_o flock_n that_o abound_v in_o breed_n in_o wool_n and_o in_o milk_n he_o afterward_o specify_v the_o looseness_n luxury_n vanity_n worldliness_n rapine_n vexation_n usurpation_n oppression_n and_o other_o such_o like_a vice_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o court._n in_o another_o book_n of_o he_o entitle_v 10._o de_fw-fr lapsu_fw-la &_o reparatione_fw-la justitiae_fw-la he_o show_v that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v infect_v france_n by_o come_v there_o specify_v all_o the_o vice_n and_o blemish_n which_o be_v communicate_v unto_o it_o and_o those_o no_o small_a company_n 18_o last_o say_v he_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o apostolic_a bishop_n be_v vex_v with_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o italian_n make_v choice_n of_o france_n for_o his_o seat_n and_o for_o all_o t●e_v court_n or_o rome_n suppose_v he_o can_v not_o ●inde_v assure_v refuge_n elsewhere_o to_o who_o i_o can_v wish_v the_o strength_n of_o france_n have_v never_o prove_v a_o staff_n of_o a_o reed_n as_o it_o be_v a_o long_a time_n before_o foretold_a that_o it_o should●_n what_o be_v it_o else_o that_o bring_v france_n upon_o the_o sudden_a into_o these_o misery_n make_v her_o fall_n away_o from_o that_o eminent_a glory_n which_o make_v her_o flourish_n above_o all_o other_o nation_n but_o that_o degenerate_v from_o those_o ancient_a virtue_n which_o adorn_v she_o with_o such_o a_o excellency_n of_o honour_n she_o be_v change_v from_o valour_n to_o cowardice_n from_o diligence_n to_o sloth_n from_o honesty_n to_o ignominy_n from_o gravity_n and_o constancy_n to_o a_o wanton_a lightness_n from_o
temperance_n to_o luxury_n from_o courage_n to_o presumption_n from_o liberality_n to_o covetousness_n and_o unrestrained_a spoil_n from_o thrift_n to_o prodigality_n from_o trust_n to_o treachery_n from_o piety_n to_o impiety_n from_o order_n to_o confusion_n from_o a_o solid_a glory_n to_o pride_n and_o vanity_n from_o zeal_n of_o the_o public_a good_a to_o private_a gain_n from_o correction_n and_o discipline_n to_o a_o general_a impunity_n and_o licence_n of_o all_o wickedness_n and_o misdemeanour_n and_o to_o sum_n up_o all_o in_o a_o word_n which_o be_v proper_a for_o our_o present_a subject_n from_o justice_n to_o injustice_n and_o all_o iniquity_n 19_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n entitle_v de_fw-fr hierarchia_fw-la subcoelesti_fw-la 7._o who_o live_v about_o the_o same_o time_n under_o charles_n the_o five_o and_o six_o have_v make_v we_o also_o a_o inventary_a of_o the_o abuse_n deformity_n and_o debauchment_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o as_o he_o say_v creep_v into_o it_o for_o the_o most_o part_n after_o clement_n the_o five_o celestine_n the_o five_o as_o the_o story_n go_v see_v the_o state_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n even_o then_o disorderly_a and_o corrupt_a retire_a himself_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o renounce_v the_o popedom_n and_o although_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v cheat_v by_o boniface_n the_o eight_o his_o successor_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o enter_v like_o a_o fox_n and_o reign_v like_o a_o lion_n yet_o the_o same_o celestine_n be_v move_v so_o to_o do_v rather_o out_o of_o a_o desire_n of_o avoid_v pomp_n and_o enjoy_v the_o embrace_n of_o his_o rachel_n benet_n who_o be_v of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o pre●icants_n succeed_v boniface_n who_o have_v make_v peace_n with_o the_o king_n of_o france_n with_o who_o his_o predecessor_n be_v at_o odds_n he_o undertake_v to_o reform_v the_o church_n but_o he_o can_v not_o go_v through_o with_o it_o be_v he_o live_v not_o a_o whole_a year_n after_o he_o there_o be_v a_o pope_n choose_v by_o the_o name_n of_o clement_n the_o five_o an_z archbishop_n of_o bourdeaux_n in_o france_n under_o who_o all_o the_o canon_n the_o custom_n ecclesiastical_a and_o other_o virtue_n do_v utter_o perish_v their_o gallantry_n be_v increase_v simony_n flourish_v avarice_n spring_v up_o pride_n and_o pleasure_n wax_v hot_a they_o give_v themselves_o up_o to_o the_o delicacy_n of_o the_o palate_n a_o puddle_n of_o luxury_n do_v overflow_v all_o and_o be_v pour_v down_o upon_o the_o clergy_n be_v not_o all_o the_o church_n afterward_o make_v tributary_n consider_v the_o pecuniary_a tithe_n the_o slaughter-house_n the_o procuration_n in_o absence_n the_o injust_a reservation_n of_o all_o dignity_n effect_v the_o bestow_n of_o benefice_n put_v all_o into_o one_o man_n hand_n the_o exemption_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o maim_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n the_o plenary_a indulgence_n of_o all_o sin_n grant_v to_o rich_a man_n consider_v also_o the_o present_n of_o insufficient_a man_n to_o bishopriques_n and_o the_o commutation_n of_o all_o offence_n into_o pecuniary_a mulct_n 20_o john_n duke_n of_o bourge_n in_o a_o epistle_n which_o he_o send_v to_o pope_n innocent_a the_o seven_o among_o other_o thing_n tell_v he_o subcoelesti_fw-la that_o in_o peter_n case_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n be_v wont_a to_o rise_v and_o the_o fruitful_a earth_n bring_v forth_o fruit_n of_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o divine_a seed_n a_o hundred_o fold_n that_o there_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n remain_v entire_a and_o incorrupted_a whereas_o now_o we_o see_v a_o head_n faint_a a_o heart_n sick_a and_o scarce_o ought_v sound_v from_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n to_o the_o top_n of_o the_o head_n and_o he_o have_v say_v before_o that_o ambition_n the_o fountain_n of_o other_o vice_n be_v now_o grow_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o it_o spread_v abroad_o monstrous_a and_o abominable_a vice_n over_o all_o the_o earth_n like_o branch_n of_o a_o green_a stock_n 21_o afterward_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n be_v call_v many_o good_a decree_n be_v there_o make_v there_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v now_o reere_v their_o power_n too_o high_a be_v bring_v under_o the_o yoke_n of_o a_o council_n there_o their_o enterprise_n be_v reprehend_v their_o power_n bound_v and_o regulate_v hark_v what_o silvius_n say_v how_o that_o decree_n be_v necessary_a to_o curb_v the_o ambition_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n fine_a who_o thrust_v up_o themselves_o above_o the_o catholic_a church_n think_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o do_v what_o they_o list_v and_o a_o little_a to_o divert_v the_o thought_n of_o the_o pope_n from_o the_o care_n of_o temporal_a matter_n consider_v that_o they_o never_o think_v of_o spiritual_a but_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o this_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o the_o pope_n hold_v that_o council_n to_o be_v apocryphal_a yea_o heretical_a they_o condemn_v it_o in_o the_o lateran_n for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v they_o so_o that_o we_o be_v to_o begin_v again_o whereupon_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o call_v yet_o for_o a_o reformation_n of_o the_o head_n beside_o what_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n we_o will_v here_o set_v down_o the_o testimony_n of_o gregory_n haymbourg_n a_o german_a lawyer_n who_o live_v at_o that_o time_n petri_fw-la the_o council_n of_o basil_n endeavour_v to_o abolish_v and_o reform_v that_o and_o desire_v to_o reduce_v the_o present_a vicar_n of_o christ_n to_o some_o form_n which_o come_v near_o the_o life_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v let_v hither_o towards_o forin_o the_o prosecution_n of_o that_o reformation_n which_o w●●_n begin_v so_o soon_o as_o it_o touch_v upon_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v such_o a_o storm_n raise_v against_o it_o that_o the_o ship_n of_o peter_n seem_v bury_v in_o the_o wave_n where_o it_o swim_v be_v it_o can_v sink_v 22_o nicholas_n cusan_a cardinal_n of_o st._n peter_n ad_fw-la vincula_fw-la who_o write_v not_o long_o after_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr concordia_fw-la catholica_fw-la say_v the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ought_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o first_o place_n 27._o because_o as_o gregory_n say_v in_o a_o council_n where_o they_o meddle_v with_o reformation_n they_o must_v begin_v at_o the_o head_n and_o afterward_o he_o say_v that_o when_o the_o head_n be_v sick_a all_o the_o member_n be_v sensible_a of_o it_o and_o that_o the_o health_n of_o inferior_n depend_v upon_o the_o soundness_n of_o those_o that_o be_v set_v over_o they_o and_o that_o there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a enormity_n than_o when_o he_o who_o think_v every_o thing_n lawful_a for_o he_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o uncontrolled_a power_n invade_v the_o right_a of_o those_o that_o be_v under_o he_o 23_o james_n de_fw-fr paradise_n of_o chartres_n who_o write_v also_o a_o little_a after_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr septem_fw-la statibus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la say_v see_v than_o we_o hold_v it_o possible_a to_o proceed_v to_o a_o reformation_n as_o well_o of_o the_o head_n as_o the_o member_n by_o such_o as_o have_v authority_n and_o presidency_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a eccles._n it_o must_v be_v either_o by_o one_o man_n or_o more_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v by_o one_o man_n be_v against_o all_o reason_n how_o eminent_a soever_o he_o be_v for_o his_o virtue_n his_o knowledge_n his_o worth_n although_o he_o be_v renown_v for_o his_o miracle_n nay_o in_o my_o opinion_n not_o by_o the_o pope_n himself_o alone_o for_o there_o be_v so_o many_o canon_n decretal_a and_o constitution_n make_v by_o ●hem_n already_o as_o be_v good_a for_o nought_o but_o fill_v up_o parchment_n to_o no_o purpose_n without_o work_v any_o reformation_n beside_o see_v it_o be_v evident_a ●ay_n palpable_a that_o hi●_n own_o court_n stand_v in_o great_a need_n of_o reformation_n a●_n have_v be_v well_o know_v by_o the_o common_a cry_n of_o the_o last_o general_n counc●●●●_n which_o court_n of_o hi●_n if_o he_o either_o can_v or_o will_v not_o reform_v 〈…〉_z which_o he_o cover_v under_o his_o wing_n how_o be_v it_o credible_a that_o he_o shall_v ●eforme_v the_o church_n which_o be_v of_o so_o large_a a_o extent_n beside_o it_o may_v be_v object_v to_o him●_n apply_v the_o salve_n to_o your_o own_o sore_n first_o as_o be_v the_o head_n for_o when_o that_o be_v cure_v you_o may_v with_o less_o difficulty_n cure_v the_o member_n wherefore_o physician_n heal_v thyself_o you_o must_v first_o take_v the_o beam_n out_o of_o your_o own_o eye_n and_o then_o you_o may_v take_v the_o mo●e_n out_o of_o your_o brother_n eye_n else_o you_o will_v do_v no_o good_a by_o a_o invert_v order_n vnsavory_a salt_n be_v not_o good_a for_o
of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n to_o wit_n the_o imputation_n of_o covetousness_n which_o be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_a and_o main_o in_o this_o that_o no_o man_n can_v dispatch_v any_o business_n at_o rome_n without_o chaffer_v and_o disburse_v large_a sum_n of_o money_n and_o give_v of_o bribe_n rom●_n but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o poverty_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o this_o scandal_n and_o infamy_n the_o natural_a child_n ought_v to_o relieve_v the_o poverty_n of_o their_o mother_n wherefore_o say_v he_o for_o the_o utter_a root_n out_o of_o this_o scandal_n we_o require_v that_o two_o prebend_n be_v allow_v we_o out_o of_o all_o church_n and_o abbey_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o one_o monk_n out_o of_o every_o covent_n but_o the_o english_a perceive_v the_o fallacy_n to_o be_v too_o gross_a make_v a_o mock_n of_o that_o demand_n 1334._o 7_o we_o must_v here_o relate_v a_o dream_n which_o a_o certain_a bishop_n have_v of_o the_o election_n of_o benedict_n the_o 12_o and_o what_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o he_o dream_v that_o some_o body_n appear_v to_o he_o upon_o the_o night_n and_o say_v thou_o seek_v the_o pope_n he_o be_v not_o and_o return_v again_o a_o little_a after_o say_v will_v thou_o see_v the_o pope_n this_o be_v he_o show_v he_o a_o big_a man_n who_o he_o know_v not_o but_o be_v arrive_v at_o avignon_n where_o the_o see_v then_o be_v just_a upon_o the_o point_n when_o they_o be_v go_v to_o the_o election_n of_o a_o pope_n after_o the_o death_n of_o john_n the_o 22._o have_v find_v that_o cardinal_n blank_n be_v the_o man_n which_o be_v show_v unto_o he_o he_o seek_v he_o out_o say_v unto_o he_o father_n you_o shall_v be_v pope_n and_o have_v rehearse_v his_o dream_n unto_o he_o he_o add_v he_o that_o show_v i_o your_o visage_n carry_v i_o into_o a_o most_o filthy_a stable_n full_a of_o dirt_n and_o dung_n where_o i_o see_v a_o coffer_n of_o most_o white_a marble_n quite_o empty_a you_o be_v that_o coffer_n which_o you_o must_v fill_v with_o virtue_n in_o execute_v this_o charge_n o_o you_o shepherd_n and_o stable-groome_n cleanse_v the_o court_n and_o see_v apostolic_a which_o be_v now_o nought_o else_o but_o a_o filthy_a nasty_a stable_n of_o villainy_n covetousness_n and_o simony_n ferra●i●●_n 8_o one_o of_o our_o law-commentators_a say_v the_o emperor_n like_o the_o eagle_n leave_v his_o prey_n &_o do_v not_o as_o one_o insatiable●_n set_v his_o tooth_n to_o every_o kind_n of_o meat_n but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o with_o the_o pope_n who_o like_o the_o universe_n contain_v all_o thing_n a_o officer_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n after_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o several_a tax_n of_o the_o chancery_n say_v by_o these_o upstart_n and_o unusual_a exaction_n be_v verify_v the_o say_n of_o alphonsus_n king_n ●f_n arragon_n record_v by_o antonius_n panormitanus_fw-la in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o apothegm_n of_o alphonsus_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o harpy_n do_v not_o live_v now_o in_o the_o isle_n but_o have_v shift_v their_o habitation_n and_o reside_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n so_o true_a they_o find_v it_o that_o one_o of_o our_o great_a canonist_n cite_v the_o very_a same_o another_o canonist_n geer_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v very_o liberal_a that_o take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o gold_n for_o a_o little_a piece_n of_o lead_n but_o he_o hit_v it_o more_o fit_o that_o say_v the_o pope_n in_o this_o have_v find_v out_o the_o philosopher_n stone_n one_o of_o our_o ancient_a practitioner_n make_v this_o prayer_n that_o some_o good_a emperor_n will_v stand_v up_o against_o those_o that_o destroy_v the_o world_n ancient_o by_o their_o devotion_n but_o now_o by_o their_o covetousness_n and_o rapine_n who_o have_v ruin_v the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o all_o lay_v man_n and_o in_o another_o passage_n speak_v of_o charge_n 168._o the_o pope_n say_v he_o have_v reserve_v they_o both_o in_o this_o case_n and_o many_o of_o this_o nature_n to_o fill_v his_o own_o purse_n and_o his_o insatiate_a court._n and_o again_o he_o say_v that_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o avarice_n and_o ambition_n be_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o romanist_n do_v many_o thing_n against_o god_n and_o his_o law_n to_o their_o eternal_a disgrace_n and_o everlasting_a loss_n of_o their_o soul_n 56._o 9_o a_o english_a monk_n say_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1181._o under_o alexander_n the_o 3._o prester_n john_n king_n of_o the_o indies_n for_o so_o he_o call_v he_o be_v aminded_a to_o serve_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o which_o great_a design_n there_o have_v be_v a_o happy_a issue_n if_o the_o same_o or_o rather_o the_o infamy_n of_o the_o roman_a avarice_n have_v not_o defile_v the_o whole_a world_n through_o all_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o make_v his_o devotion_n to_o grow_v somewhat_o cold_a 878._o theodoric_n vric_n a_o divine_a of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o austin_n monk_n in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr consolation_n ecclesiae_fw-la which_o he_o dedicate_v to_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n afford_v we_o also_o this_o testimony_n papa_n stupor_n mundi_fw-la cecidit_fw-la secúmque_fw-la ruêre_fw-la calica_n templa_fw-la dei_fw-la membra_fw-la simúlque_fw-la caput_fw-la papa_n dolour_n mundique_fw-la pudor_fw-la per_fw-la crebra_fw-la patescit_fw-la crimina_fw-la seu_fw-la scelera_fw-la famine_n sonifero_fw-la heu_fw-la simon_n regnat_fw-la per_fw-la munera_fw-la quaeque_fw-la reguntur_fw-la judiciumque_fw-la pium_fw-la gaza_fw-la nefanda_fw-la ●etat_fw-la rome_n curia_fw-la papalis_fw-la fovet_fw-la omne_fw-la scandala_fw-la mundi_fw-la delubra_fw-la sacra_fw-la facit_fw-la perfiditate_fw-la forum_n ordo_fw-la sacer_fw-la baptisma_fw-la sacrum_fw-la cum_fw-la chrismate_fw-la sancto_fw-la venduntur_fw-la turpi_fw-la conditione_n fori_fw-la dives_fw-la honoratur_fw-la pauper_fw-la contemnitur_fw-la atque_fw-la qui_fw-la dare_v plura_fw-la valet_fw-la munera_fw-la gratus_fw-la erit_fw-la aurea_fw-la quae_fw-la quondam_a fuit_fw-la hi●c_fw-la argentea_fw-la papae_fw-la curia_fw-la procedit_fw-la deteriore_fw-la modo_fw-la ferrea_fw-la dehinc_fw-la factâ_fw-la durâ_fw-la cervice_fw-la quievit_fw-la tempore_fw-la non_fw-la modico_fw-la sed_fw-la modò_fw-la facta_fw-la i●tum_fw-la postque_fw-la lutum_fw-la quid_fw-la deterius_fw-la soletesse_n recordor_fw-la stercu●_n &_o in_o tali_fw-la curia_fw-la tota_fw-la s●det_fw-la down_o go_v the_o pope_n the_o wonderment_n of_o all_o with_o he_o god_n church_n the_o head_n and_o member_n fall_v the_o pope_n the_o world_n both_o grief_n and_o shame_n be_v know_v by_o his_o many_o crime_n which_o now_o be_v famous_a grow_v now_o who_o but_o simon_n bribe_n be_v all_o in_o all_o and_o wicked_a pelf_n just_a judgement_n do_v forestall_v the_o popish_a court_n do_v foster_v all_o disgrace_n and_o turn_v the_o church_n into_o a_o market_n place_n chrism_n order_n baptism_n all_o which_o holy_a be_v be_v base_o sell_v as_o at_o a_o peddle_v fair_a the_o rich_a be_v honour_v and_o the_o poor_a neglect_v he_o that_o can_v give_v most_o shall_v be_v best_o respect_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v of_o gold_n before_o then_o turn_v to_o silver_n of_o a_o base_a ore_n next_o stiffnecked_a she_o not_o only_o for_o a_o flirt_n grow_v into_o iron_n now_o be_v turn_v to_o dirt_n and_o after_o dirt_n what_o worse_o yet_o now_o i_o think_v on_o it_o what_o but_o sir_n reverence_n all_o the_o court_n do_v on_o it_o all_o this_o which_o the_o author_n deliver_v in_o a_o hobble_a verse_n ep_n du_n ranchin_n translate_v word_n for_o word_n to_o keep_v the_o close_o as_o he_o say_v to_o the_o sense_n but_o we_o have_v express_v it_o as_o you_o see_v 10_o petrarch_n in_o a_o epistle_n of_o he_o say_v that_o the_o grim_a porter_n be_v appease_v with_o gold_n that_o heaven_n be_v open_v with_o gold_n and_o christ_n himself_o sell_v for_o money_n 76.78_o learned_a espensaeus_n complain_v of_o the_o connivance_n of_o the_o father_n in_o this_o council_n cite_v divers_a verse_n out_o of_o mantuan_n wherein_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v represent_v wherewith_o he_o have_v fill_v divers_a page_n but_o not_o to_o swell_v this_o treatise_n too_o big_a i_o shall_v content_v myself_o to_o set_v down_o here_o only_o this_o little_a fragment_n of_o his_o discourse_n who_o distich_n be_v this_o i_o pray_v you_o say_v he_o vivere_fw-la qui_fw-la cupitis_fw-la sanctè_fw-la discedite_fw-la roma_fw-la omnia_fw-la cum_fw-la liceant_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la esse_fw-la bonum_fw-la he_o that_o will_v holy_a be_v from_o rome_n must_v ●ye_z all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a there_o but_o honesty_n sure_o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o poet_n but_o a_o philosopher_n yea_o a_o divine_v yea_o a_o monk_n and_o that_o a_o italian_n namely_o mantuan_n the_o very_a same_o be_v urge_v also_o by_o clenard_n the_o divine_a professor_n of_o hebrew_n at_o louvain_n epist_n at_o paris_n in_o portugal_n yea_o more_o this_o man_n who_o be_v nothing_o less_o that_o a_o lutheran_n have_v venture_v
such_o as_o be_v perjure_v simoniacal_a falsifier_n robber_n usurer_n schismatics_n heretic_n recant_v yea_o and_o even_o to_o admit_v they_o to_o order_n honour_n dignity_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o benefice_n to_o dispense_v with_o casual_a not_o wilful_a murderer_n howbeit_o the_o forecited_n tax_n do_v not_o except_o wilful_a parricide_n killer_n of_o father_n mother_n brother_n sister_n child_n or_o wife_n sorcerer_n enchanter_n concubin-keeper_n adulterer_n incestuous_a with_o parent_n or_o kindred_n sodomite_n sinner_n against_o nature_n abuser_n of_o themselves_o with_o beast_n etc._n etc._n o_o that_o rome_n will_v from_o henceforth_o have_v some_o shame_n and_o cease_v to_o set_v out_o such_o a_o shameless_a catalogue_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o wickedness_n 6._o 5_o we_o will_v here_o add_v the_o complaint_n of_o clemangius_n the_o divine_a upon_o this_o subject_n so_o the_o church_n which_o christ_n have_v take_v for_o his_o spouse_n without_o wrinkle_n or_o blemish_n disfigure_v by_o this_o horrible_a villainy_n be_v now_o the_o shop_n of_o all_o pride_n of_o all_o trade_v of_o all_o filch_n and_o steal_v where_o the_o sacrament_n be_v hang_v out_o for_o a_o show_n all_o the_o order_n even_o the_o priesthood_n itself_o where_o favour_n be_v sell_v for_o silver_n dispensation_n for_o not_o preach_v licence_n for_o nonresidence_n where_o all_o office_n and_o benefice_n yea_o even_o sin_n be_v buy_v and_o sold●_n last_o where_o mass_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n be_v set_v to_o sale_n will_v any_o man_n have_v a_o bishoprique_n let_v he_o provide_v his_o money_n and_o that_o no_o little_a sum_n but_o a_o pretty_a great_a one_o for_o so_o great_a a_o title_n and_o let_v he_o not_o stand_v upon_o empty_v his_o purse_n for_o the_o purchase_n of_o such_o a_o dignity_n see_v he_o will_v quick_o fill_v it_o again_o and_o that_o more_o sound_o than_o he_o can_v do_v by_o many_o sort_n of_o merchandise_n do_v any_o desire_n a_o prebend_v a_o provost_n place_n or_o some_o other_o dignity_n it_o be_v no_o matter_n for_o know_v his_o desert_n his_o life_n and_o conversation_n but_o so_o many_o crown_n as_o he_o have_v in_o his_o chest_n such_o hope_n may_v he_o conceive_v of_o compass_v his_o desire_n for_o what_o skill_v it_o to_o speak_v of_o poor_a folk_n who_o be_v account_v unprofitable_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o unworthy_a of_o all_o government_n or_o charge_n and_o who_o have_v no_o other_o hope_n but_o to_o wax_v old_a and_o pine_v away_o in_o misery_n disrespect_a and_o despise_v what_o shall_v a_o poor_a man_n go_v to_o market_n for_o with_o a_o empty_a pouch_n when_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o buy_v the_o ware_n with_o cleric_a 6_o the_o case_n be_v fine_o alter_v the_o imperial_a law_n exclude_v rich_a man_n out_o of_o church_n and_o the_o papal_a poor_a man_n these_o last_o example_n lead_v we_o to_o a_o three_o kind_n of_o tax_n which_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o bishopriques_n and_o other_o benefice_n in_o the_o catalogue_n hereof_o be_v set_v down_o what_o sum_n of_o money_n the_o pope_n be_v wont_a to_o exact_v for_o first_o fruit_n vacancy_n or_o expedition●_n there_o be_v two_o of_o these_o print_v among_o the_o rest_n the_o one_o in_o germany_n contain_v the_o tax_n of_o archbishopriques_n bishopriques_n abbey_n priory_n and_o other_o benefice_n thoughout_v all_o christendom_n the_o other_o which_o be_v particular_a to_o france_n contain_v only_o the_o tax_n of_o the_o bishopriques_n and_o benefice_n of_o this_o kingdom_n at_o paris_n by_o toussaint_n denis_n 1517._o 7._o the_o sum_n that_o come_v into_o the_o pope_n coffer_n by_o this_o mean_n be_v inestimable_a nothing_o like_o to_o this_o for_o the_o destruction_n of_o kingdom_n and_o yet_o prince_n be_v so_o bewitch_v as_o to_o suffer_v it_o boniface_n the_o 9_o be_v the_o inventour_n or_o at_o least_o the_o promoter_n of_o it_o after_o john_n the_o 22_o have_v give_v a_o hint_n to_o it_o for_o before_o this_o time_n the_o world_n know_v not_o what_o it_o mean_v so_o many_o writer_n do_v testify_v among_o other_o langius_n platina_n and_o theodorick_n of_o nihem_n the_o word_n of_o the_o last_o be_v very_o remarkable_a 7_o about_o the_o ten_o year_n of_o his_o popedom_n first-fruit_n to_o go_v more_o cunning_o to_o work_v in_o that_o matter_n and_o palliate_v the_o simony_n which_o he_o practise_v under_o some_o colour_n of_o necessity_n he_o reserve_v to_o his_o exequeter_n one_o yeeros_fw-la first-fruit_n of_o all_o the_o cathederall_a church_n and_o abbey_n that_o be_v vacant_a 1._o in_o such_o sort_n that_o whosoever_o will_v be_v prefer_v by_o he_o to_o any_o archbishoprique_n bishoprique_n or_o abbey_n he_o be_v constrain_v first_o of_o all_o to_o pay_v the_o first-fruit_n of_o the_o church_n or_o monastery_n to_o which_o he_o will_v be_v send_v although_o perhaps_o he_o can_v never_o get_v possession_n of_o it_o for_o this_o boniface_n scarce_o ever_o think_v of_o that_o nay_o on_o the_o contrary_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v god_n grant_v he_o may_v not_o get_v possession_n of_o this_o church_n or_o that_o monastery_n which_o he_o therefore_o desire_v that_o he_o may_v get_v money_n for_o it_o of_o another_o now_o these_o first-fruit_n be_v rate_v by_o he_o at_o thrice_o as_o much_o as_o those_o levy_n which_o be_v former_o make_v for_o discharge_v of_o ordinary_a duty_n by_o letter_n out_o of_o the_o apostolical_a chamber_n and_o for_o asmuch_o as_o all_o those_o that_o desire_v to_o be_v prefer_v have_v not_o always_o so_o much_o money_n in_o their_o purse_n when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o court_n as_o be_v needful_a usury_n grow_v so_o frequent_a at_o court_n in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o boniface_n that_o it_o be_v not_o think_v to_o be_v a_o sin_n any_o long_o nay_o such_o usury_n be_v sometime_o public_o require_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o officer_n of_o the_o same_o boniface_n 8_o he_o relate_v divers_a other_o trick_n of_o the_o same_o pope_n concern_v tax_n so_o foul_a and_o stink_a that_o i_o will_v not_o defile_v this_o discourse_n with_o they_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o these_o be_v personal_a fault_n so_o say_v i_o but_o they_o suit_v so_o well_o with_o his_o successor_n that_o they_o derive_v they_o through_o their_o vein_n and_o that_o with_o interest_n i_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o first-fruit_n but_o the_o trick_n of_o petty_a tol_n grace_n expectative_a alter_v the_o rule_n of_o chancery_n to_o put_v all_o in_o confusion_n dispensation_n subscription_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o that_o historian_n think_v horrible_a matter_n at_o their_o first_o beginning_n but_o custom_n have_v sweeten_v they_o unto_o we_o and_o for_o annates_fw-la whereas_o boniface_n the_o 9_o exact_v they_o only_o of_o bishopriques_n and_o abbey_n they_o bring_v in_o priory_n and_o other_o benefice_n in_o after_o age_n fo●_n mark_v the_o title_n of_o those_o of_o france_n here_o follow_v the_o name_n of_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o also_o of_o all_o abbey_n priory_n and_o other_o benefice_n within_o their_o circuit_n with_o the_o tax_n which_o be_v reserve_v upon_o they_o for_o the_o see_v apostolic_a when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v void_a and_o which_o be_v pay_v for_o annate_fw-it or_o provision_n 2_o leo_fw-la the_o 10_o extend_v this_o tax_n to_o pension_n also_o as_o be_v testify_v by_o a_o doctor_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n this_o be_v the_o custom_n say_v he_o till_o the_o time_n of_o leo_n the_o ten_o what_o time_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o annates_fw-la shall_v be_v pay_v out_o of_o pension_n also_o if_o they_o amount_v to_o twelve_o ducat_n of_o gold_n in_o the_o pope_n book_n this_o tax_n be_v further_o enhanse_v by_o his_o successor_n and_o make_v far_o more_o heavy_a than_o before_o at_o it_o be_v affirm_v in_o the_o 77_o article_n of_o the_o remonstrance_n of_o the_o court_n of_o parliament_n make_v to_o king_n lewes_n the_o eleven_o 9_o item_n it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o though_o the_o exaction_n be_v excessive_a both_o in_o the_o vacancy_n and_o otherwise_o then_o when_o these_o constitution_n be_v make_v yet_o after_o the_o repeal_n of_o they_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n pius_n 77._o and_o at_o this_o present_a they_o be_v more_o excessive_a by_o half_n for_o then_o in_o case_n of_o vacancy_n they_o pay_v but_o ad_fw-la volorem_fw-la taxae_fw-la reduce_v ad_fw-la mediam_fw-la taxae_fw-la but_o after_o that_o repeal_n ordinary_o there_o be_v more_o exact_v in_o the_o vacancy_n than_o the_o whole_a tax_n come_v to_o as_o sometime_o a_o whole_a year_n value_v of_o benefice_n sometime_o two_o insomuch_o that_o some_o pawn_v their_o bull_n to_o the_o usurer_n as_o the_o abbey_n of_o bernay_n by_o name_n because_o two_o hundred_o ducat_n be_v demand_v whereas_o the_o abbey_n be_v not_o worth_a two_o
better_o provide_v for_o and_o that_o such_o governor_n might_n be_v set_v over_o they_o as_o be_v most_o commendable_a for_o their_o life_n and_o excellent_a for_o their_o learning_n it_o may_v be_v think_v that_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n indeed_o if_o the_o thing_n itself_o proclaim_v the_o contrary_a do_v not_o make_v it_o apparent_a that_o since_o this_o custom_n be_v use_v there_o have_v be_v none_o but_o dunce_n worldling_n money_n man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v raise_v to_o those_o dignity_n by_o simony_n and_o again_o but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o river_n of_o gold_n derive_v from_o all_o part_n may_v flow_v unto_o they_o in_o a_o full_a stream_n they_o have_v take_v away_o the_o power_n of_o presentation_n and_o the_o liberty_n of_o bestow_v and_o dispose_n of_o benefice_n by_o any_o mean_n whatsoever_o from_o all_o diocesan_n and_o lawful_a patron_n forbid_v they_o upon_o pain_n of_o anathema_n rash_o to_o presume_v for_o so_o their_o writ_n run_v to_o institute_v any_o person_n into_o any_o benefice_n within_o their_o jurisdiction_n church-living_n till_o such_o time_n as_o some_o one_o be_v present_v to_o it_o to_o who_o by_o their_o authority_n they_o have_v grant_v it_o 62._o 6_o m._n john_n gerson_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr defectu_fw-la virorum_fw-la ecclesiasticorum_fw-la where_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o which_o he_o present_v at_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n say_v mark_v what_o that_o mean_n that_o now_o adays_o bishop_n prelate_n and_o parish_n priest_n be_v most_o elect_v by_o the_o pope_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v take_v a_o order_n with_o that_o abuse_n the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n have_v another_o relation_n much_o of_o the_o same_o strain_n the_o prelate_n and_o other_o ordinary_a dispenser_n as_o also_o the_o patron_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o right_n the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v confound_v and_o many_o other_o thing_n be_v commit_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n to_o the_o loss_n of_o soul_n and_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o church_n of_o our_o realm_n the_o council_n of_o basil_n do_v provide_v a_o remedy_n against_o this_o abuse_n and_o the_o pragmatique_a after_o it_o but_o so_o as_o the_o pope_n have_v cast_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o it_o have_v disannul_v almost_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n 7_o the_o state_n assemble_v in_o the_o city_n of_o toures_n 1483_o in_o a_o bill_n which_o they_o present_v to_o king_n lewes_n the_o eleven_o among_o other_o thing_n say_v that_o if_o the_o king_n do_v not_o undertake_v to_o defend_v they_o consider_v the_o quality_n of_o their_o person_n the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a see_n apostolic_a they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v the_o usurpation_n and_o impeachment_n which_o any_o subject_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o other_o ambitious_a of_o preferment_n will_v make_v against_o the_o elector_n which_o have_v the_o right_n of_o election_n or_o ordinary_a donation_n by_o censure_n apostolic_a and_o by_o this_o mean_v all_o this_o kingdom_n which_o be_v already_o at_o a_o low_a ebb_n and_o very_o poor_a shall_v be_v strip_v and_o despoil_v of_o that_o little_a money_n which_o remain_v of_o the_o former_a exaction_n 8_o a_o german_a 1●1●_n monk_n complain_v likewise_o that_o under_o leo_n the_o ten_o the_o election_n make_v by_o bishop_n be_v quite_o reject_v and_o the_o right_a thereof_o devolve_v to_o they_o of_o rome_n a_o certain_a elect_a cardinal_n complain_v that_o the_o pope_n usurp_v all_o the_o right_n of_o inferior_a church_n that_o he_o engross_v to_o himself_o all_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n make_v nothing_o as_o it_o be_v of_o other_o bishop_n which_o he_o do_v not_o according_a to_o saint_n peter_n pattern_n marsilius_n 22_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n arrogate_v unto_o themselves_o a_o coactive_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o minister_n of_o all_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o they_o have_v express_v by_o their_o decretal_a epistle_n that_o the_o dispense_n and_o dispose_n of_o the_o temporal_a mean_n of_o all_o clergyman_n belong_v unto_o they_o to_o do_v with_o they_o as_o they_o list_v without_o ever_o ask_v the_o consent_n of_o any_o college_n or_o particular_a person_n of_o what_o dignity_n or_o authority_n soever_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n in_o their_o remonstrance_n make_v to_o lewes_n the_o eleven_o say_v 41._o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o mounsieur_fw-fr s_o lewes_n these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n those_o of_o rome_n begin_v to_o go_v about_o to_o hinder_v election_n and_o let_v loose_v the_o reins_n to_o the_o former_a inconvenience_n but_o that_o he_o by_o good_a advice_n and_o counsel_n make_v a_o edict_n and_o decree_n to_o the_o contrary_n that_o be_v the_o pragmatique_n 124._o which_o we_o have_v at_o this_o day_n entire_a wherein_o we_o read_v among_o other_o article_n imprimis_fw-la that_o the_o bishop_n patron_n and_o ordinary_a doner_n of_o the_o church_n of_o our_o realm_n keep_v their_o right_a entire_a and_o that_o every_o man_n jurisdiction_n be_v preserve_v item_n that_o cathedral_n church_n and_o other_o of_o our_o realm_n have_v their_o election_n and_o that_o they_o be_v the_o sole_a judge_n of_o the_o validity_n of_o they_o in_o another_o article_n 42._o of_o the_o same_o remonstrance_n it_o be_v say_v item_n and_o consequent_o king_n lewes_n hutin_n confirm_v the_o same_o edict_n of_o s._n lewes_n in_o the_o year_n 1315_o and_o that_o of_o king_n philip_n the_o fair_a who_o have_v former_o make_v a_o like_a decree_n and_o afterward_o king_n john_n the_o year_n 1551_o confirm_v the_o say_a ordinance_n of_o his_o say_a grandfather_n philip._n all_o these_o ordinance_n tend_v to_o the_o repulse_v of_o the_o usurpation_n of_o rome_n from_o which_o our_o ancestor_n have_v so_o much_o ado_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o 9_o the_o state_n of_o germany_n complain_v also_o in_o the_o process_n of_o their_o former_a grievance_n that_o the_o pope_n not_o content_a to_o usurp_v the_o right_n of_o another_o in_o case_n of_o election_n and_o investiture_n commit_v also_o another_o intolerable_a fault_n in_o confer_v benefice_n and_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n upon_o ignorant_a people_n and_o stranger_n ●●●ens_n respect_v in_o his_o election_n only_o his_o own_o gain_n not_o their_o person_n which_o be_v indifferent_a to_o he_o we_o have_v tell_v you_o already_o what_o cl●mangius_n say_v of_o dunce_n we_o will_v yet_o add_v this_o out_o of_o he_o you_o have_v see_v many_o which_o at_o their_o come_n from_o their_o study_n and_o school_n nay_o which_o be_v worse_o from_o the_o plough_n have_v betake_v themselves_o to_o the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n and_o government_n of_o parish_n and_o other_o benefice_n after_o they_o have_v practise_v servile_a art_n which_o understand_v as_o little_a latin_a as_o arabic_a yea_o which_o can_v not_o read_v and_o which_o i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o speak_v can_v not_o distinguish_v a_o b_o from_o a_o bull-foot_n he_o say_v as_o much_o concern_v their_o manner_n declare_v how_o those_o who_o be_v prefer_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v whole_o addict_v to_o vice_n and_o dissoluteness_n of_o life_n 10_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n say_v as_o much_o 24._o or_o more_o before_o he_o in_o stead_n of_o sufficient_a and_o approve_a man_n out_o of_o the_o plenitude_n of_o their_o power_n they_o ordain_v such_o as_o be_v ignorant_a of_o divinity_n mere_a idiot_n and_o without_o scholarship_n and_o ofttimes_o debauch_a person_n and_o notorious_a offender_n charles_n the_o six_o in_o his_o ordinance_n of_o the_o 18_o of_o february_n 1406_o and_o when_o there_o be_v any_o question_n of_o prefer_v man_n to_o elective_a dignity_n they_o never_o use_v those_o way_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o which_o be_v appoint_v to_o examine_v and_o try_v they_o whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o the_o pope_n shall_v know_v all_o man_n and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n he_o admit_v divers_a into_o those_o dignity_n who_o be_v unworthy_a of_o they_o and_o sometime_o such_o as_o be_v unknown_a to_o he_o but_o by_o their_o money_n 7._o charles_n the_o 7_o in_o his_o pragmatique_a sanction_n say_v that_o unworthy_a person_n unknown_a and_o unexamined_a be_v prefer_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o great_a dignity_n and_o fat_a benefice_n of_o this_o kingdom_n the_o state_n of_o tours_n in_o their_o complaint_n say_v 148._o so_o illiterate_a people_n and_o not_o ecclesiastical_a shall_v be_v prefer_v to_o live_n as_o we_o have_v former_o see_v among_o the_o ten_o grievance_n which_o germany_n present_v to_o the_o emperor_n maximilian_n to_o be_v redress_v this_o be_v one_o that_o at_o rome_n the_o government_n of_o church_n be_v commit_v to_o those_o who_o be_v the_o least_o worthy_a of_o they_o and_o who_o will_v be_v more_o fit_a to_o govern_v
ibid._n for_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n say_v in_o express_a term_n that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n hungary_n bohemia_n and_o denmark_n consent_v thereunto_o so_o likewise_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n call_v that_o of_o constance_n the_o emperor_n maximilian_n that_o of_o pisa._n 27_o although_o the_o pope_n primacy_n be_v not_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o greek_a church_n yet_o he_o assemble_v the_o council_n of_o ferrara_n where_o be_v present_v the_o emperor_n of_o greece_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o greek_a bishop_n let_v we_o never_o then_o make_v it_o a_o matter_n impossible_a it_o be_v feasible_a enough_o if_o we_o give_v our_o mind_n to_o it_o when_o the_o pope_n call_v the_o council_n of_o trent●_n he_o communicate_v it_o first_o and_o foremost_a with_o christian_a prince_n and_o require_v their_o advice_n about_o it_o have_v ask_v the_o advice_n say_v paul_n the_o three_o in_o his_o bull_n of_o convocation_n and_o sound_v the_o mind_n of_o christian_a prince_n who_o consent_n in_o the_o first_o place_n we_o think_v useful_a and_o convenient_a and_o find_v they_o not_o averse_a from_o this_o our_o design_n we_o have_v thereupou_o denounce_v the_o council_n so_o king_n charles_n the_o nine_o become_v a_o suitor_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o prince_n of_o christendom_n for_o the_o renewall_n of_o that_o council_n for_o mark_v how_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o his_o letter_n direct_v to_o the_o prelate_n of_o france_n to_o cause_v they_o go_v thither_o although_o the_o present_a trouble_n of_o the_o church_n have_v move_v as_o to_o desire_n and_o procure_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a the_o hold_v of_o a_o general_n and_o ecumenical_a council_n and_o that_o our_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n the_o emperor_n and_o other_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n by_o their_o several_a answer_n make_v upon_o our_o instant_a request_n and_o suit_n unto_o they_o thereabouts_o do_v make_v a_o fair_a show_n of_o be_v willing_a to_o hearken_v thereunto_o etc._n etc._n 1_o 28_o he_o do_v no_o more_o in_o this_o but_o imitate_v the_o pattern_n of_o other_o king_n his_o predecessor_n charles_n the_o six_o to_o make_v up_o the_o schism_n betwixt_o pope_n boniface_n and_o pope_n bennet_n send_v his_o ambassador_n to_o the_o emperor_n the_o king_n of_o england_n bohemia_n and_o hungary_n pope_n to_o entreat_v they_o to_o have_v a_o regard_n to_o what_o concern_v the_o public_a good_a and_o quiet_a the_o same_o king_n go_v so_o far_o that_o he_o persuade_v wenceslaus_n the_o emperor_n to_o come_v to_o rheims_n where_o there_o be_v a_o general_n council_n hold_v upon_o that_o occasion_n where_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o divers_a other_o nation_n be_v present_a chap._n vii_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o call_v counsel_n belong_v also_o to_o king_n and_o prince_n 1_o these_o example_n invite_v we_o to_o look_v a_o little_a further_o into_o france_n and_o speak_v more_o full_o concern_v this_o point_n of_o call_v counsel_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o both_o our_o king_n and_o all_o other_o prince_n of_o christendom_n be_v deprive_v of_o this_o royal_a prerogative_n by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o pope_n thereby_o enhanse_v his_o own_o greatness_n to_o who_o all_o such_o counsel_n be_v bind_v to_o swear_v obedience_n and_o not_o to_o depend_v upon_o any_o but_o upon_o he_o the_o decree_n run_v thus_o 9_o provincial_n counsel_n if_o they_o have_v be_v any_o where_o disuse_v let_v they_o for_o reformation_n of_o manner_n correction_n of_o abuse_n compose_v of_o controversy_n and_o such_o other_o end_n as_o be_v allow_v by_o holy_a canon_n be_v bring_v up_o again_o wherefore_o let_v the_o metropolitan_o themselves_o or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o lawful_a impediment_n why_o they_o can_v the_o senior_a bishop●_n within_o a_o year_n at_o the_o further_a after_o the_o end_n of_o this_o present_a council_n and_o after_o that_o once_o every_o three_o year_n at_o least_o after_o the_o octave_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n or_o at_o some_o other_o more_o convenient_a time_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o country_n not_o fail_v to_o call_v a_o synod_n in_o their_o several_a province_n 2_o and_o in_o another_o session_n there_o be_v a_o strict_a injunction_n lay_v upon_o they_o 2._o that_o at_o the_o first_o provincial_n synod_n which_o shall_v be_v hold_v after_o the_o end_n of_o this_o present_a council_n they_o public_o receive_v all_o and_o singular_a such_o thing_n as_o have_v be_v determine_v and_o ordain_v by_o this_o holy_a synod_n and_o withal_o promise_v and_o profess_v true_a obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o remain_v that_o we_o prove_v this_o right_n of_o call_v counsel_n to_o belong_v to_o our_o king_n within_o their_o own_o kingdom_n in_o the_o collection_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n there_o be_v this_o article_n the_o most_o christian_a king_n have_v always_o as_o occasion_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o their_o country_n require_v assemble_v or_o cause_v to_o assemble_v synod_n or_o counsel_n provincial_n and_o national_n who_o among_o other_o thing_n concern_v the_o preservation_n of_o their_o state_n have_v also_o treat_v of_o such_o matter_n as_o concern_v the_o order_n and_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n of_o their_o country_n touch_v which_o they_o have_v cause_v rule_n chapter_n law_n ordinance_n and_o pragmatical_a sanction_n to_o be_v make_v and_o set_v out_o under_o their_o name_n and_o by_o their_o authority_n we_o read_v another_o article_n of_o this_o strain_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o remonstrance_n make_v by_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n to_o lewes_n the_o eleven_o 3_o nor_o be_v there_o aught_o in_o all_o this_o but_o be_v well_o back_v by_o such_o example_n and_o authority_n as_o shall_v be_v produce_v we_o begin_v then_o with_o clovis_n our_o first_o christian_a king_n by_o who_o command_n the_o first_o council_n at_o orleans_n be_v assemble_v about_o the_o year_n 506._o so_o say_v the_o bishop_n that_o meet_v there_o in_o the_o letter_n which_o they_o send_v unto_o he_o con●_n to_o their_o lord_n the_o most_o illustrious_a king_n clovis_n the_o son_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n all_o the_o clergy_n who_o you_o command_v to_o come_v unto_o the_o council_n king_n so_o likewise_o the_o second_o council_n of_o orleans_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o year_n 533._o by_o command_n from_o king_n childebert_n which_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o subscription_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o bruges_n and_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o preface_n 8●3_n we_o be_v here_o assemble_v in_o the_o city_n of_o orleans_n by_o the_o command_n of_o our_o most_o illustrious_a king_n the_o five_o of_o orleans_n be_v call_v by_o king_n cherebert_n the_o year_n 549._o wherefore_o the_o most_o mild_a and_o invincible_a prince_n cherebert_n have_v assemble_v the_o clergy_n in_o the_o city_n of_o orleans_n etc._n etc._n the_o second_o of_o paris_n be_v call_v by_o king_n childebert_n ann_n 558._o be_v meet_v in_o the_o city_n of_o paris_n they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n of_o it_o by_o the_o command_n of_o our_o most_o illustrious_a king_n childebert_n the_o first_o of_o mascon_n by_o king_n guntrand_n in_o the_o year_n 576._o we_o be_v assemble_v in_o the_o town_n of_o mascon_n by_o the_o command_n of_o our_o most_o illustrious_a king_n guntrand_n 208._o 4_o the_o second_o of_o valencia_n be_v call_v by_o he_o also_o in_o the_o year_n 588_o and_o it_o have_v the_o same_o preface_n he_o call_v also_o the_o 2_o of_o mascon_n the_o same_o year_n 588_o and_o afterward_o by_o his_o edict_n confirm_v the_o decree_n thereof_o as_o make_v by_o his_o commandment_n wherefore_o say_v he_o we_o will_v and_o command_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v contain_v in_o this_o our_o edict_n be_v for_o ever_o observe_v and_o keep_v forasmuch_o as_o we_o have_v take_v pain_n to_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v so_o determine_v at_o the_o holy_a synod_n of_o mascon_n that_o of_o cavallon_n in_o provence_n or_o as_o other_o fancy_n of_o ch●alons_n upon_o the_o saon_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o y●er_n 658_o by_o the_o call_n and_o appointment_n of_o the_o illustrious_a king_n clovis_n the_o synod_n which_o be_v hold_v in_o france_n ann_n 742_o be_v call_v by_o c●●loman_n as_o he_o himself_o witness_v in_o the_o preface_n thereunto_o i_o carloman_n duke_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o french_a with_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o the_o chief_a lord_n of_o the_o land_n have_v assemble_v in_o a_o council_n all_o the_o bishop_n of_o my_o kingdom_n together_o with_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o 742_o year_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n ●38_n 5_o in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n childeric_n pepin_n who_o then_o rule_v all_o the_o roast_n call_v a_o council_n
preside_v there_o 3_o we_o read_v in_o a_o old_a french_a historian_n that_o rhabanus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o mentz_n preside_v in_o two_o several_a counsel_n hold_v in_o that_o city_n by_o the_o command_n of_o lewes_n the_o gentle_a pithoe●_n but_o the_o same_o author_n tell_v we_o plain_o that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o emperor_n pleasure_n and_o in_o his_o absence_n see_v that_o in_o the_o act_n of_o those_o counsel_n at_o least_o of_o the_o first_o for_o the_o rest_n we_o have_v not_o the_o same_o rhabanus_fw-la and_o all_o the_o synod_n speak_v continual_o of_o the_o emperor_n with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o humility_n precedent_n even_o refer_v all_o to_o his_o judgement_n but_o hark_v what_o the_o forecited_a author_n say_v of_o it_o orgarius_fw-la bishop_n of_o mentz_n die_v in_o the_o year_n 847_o and_o rhabanus_fw-la succeed_v in_o his_o place_n who_o by_o command_n from_o king_n lewes_n hold_v a_o synod_n at_o mentz_n the_o same_o year_n the_o title_n of_o that_o synod_n import_v that_o rhabanus_fw-la preside_v in_o it_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o emperor_n command_n the_o same_o author_n say_v in_o the_o year_n 852_o there_o be_v a_o council_n hold_v at_o mentz_n the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o germany_n by_o the_o will_n and_o command_v of_o the_o say_v most_o renown_a prince_n rhabanus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o that_o city_n be_v precedent_n of_o it_o a_o little_a after_o he_o add_v further_a that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n while_o they_o treat_v of_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n the_o king_n be_v employ_v in_o public_a affair_n and_o that_o they_o send_v their_o decree_n unto_o he_o to_o be_v confirm_v a_o certain_a testimony_n that_o the_o presidence_n be_v confer_v upon_o rhabanus_fw-la by_o the_o prince_n 4_o king_n charles_n the_o bald_n be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n ●olden_a at_o pi●tis_n upon_o sein_fw-fr in_o the_o year_n 863._o he_o be_v name_v first_o 900_o the_o decree_n be_v conceive_v in_o his_o name_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o preside_v there_o we_o may_v make_v the_o like_a inference_n of_o all_o those_o other_o counsel_n which_o run_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o king_n or_o to_o speak_v more_o proper_o where_o our_o king_n speak_v and_o decree_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v propose_v with_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o which_o kind_n we_o find_v good_a store_n for_o without_o doubt_n either_o they_o themselves_o preside_v in_o they_o or_o other_o for_o they_o 5_o king_n arnold_n after_o he_o have_v call_v the_o council_n of_o tribur●_n 26._o in_o the_o year_n 895._o preside_v there_o himself_o as_o may_v be_v collect_v from_o that_o epistle_n which_o cont●ines_v the_o preface_n which_o be_v likewise_o avouch_v in_o plain_a term_n at_o the_o end_n in_o this_o holy_a council_n the_o devout_a prince_n and_o most_o renown_a king_n arnold_n be_v precedent_n and_o employ_v himself_o about_o it_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o reverend_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n which_o come_v thither_o be_v all_o seat_v 6_o philip_n augustus_n call_v a_o council_n at_o paris_n ann_n 1●84_n at_o which_o he_o preside_v as_o be_v collect_v from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o author_n who_o speak_v thus_o of_o it_o he_o command_v a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v call_v at_o paris_n of_o all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n and_o prince_n of_o his_o realm_n which_o he_o have_v keep_v with_o they_o by_o common_a advice_n 1184._o by_o his_o authority_n royal_a he_o enjoin_v the_o archbishop_n bishop_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n by_o their_o frequent_a sermon_n and_o exhortation_n to_o persuade_v the_o people_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n to_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o defend_v the_o christian_a faith_n against_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ._n 7_o when_o king_n lewes_n the_o father_n of_o st._n lewes_n reign_v in_o france_n say_v john_n le_fw-fr maire_n and_o gregory_n six●_o schism_n romanus_n the_o say_v pope_n legate_n come_v into_o france_n by_o the_o will_n of_o the_o king_n there_o be_v a_o council_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n assemble_v whereat_o the_o king_n and_o the_o say_a legate_n do_v preside_v 8_o in_o the_o year_n 1286_o there_o be_v a_o council_n hold_v consist_v of_o all_o the_o prelate_n and_o baron_n of_o france_n against_o pope_n boniface_n the_o eight_o ibid._n where_o king_n philip_n be_v present_a in_o person_n and_o preside_v at_o it_o reckon_v up_o all_o the_o outrage_n and_o injury_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o that_o pope_n boniface_n 472._o say_v the_o same_o author_n 9_o the_o ordinance_n of_o charles_n the_o six_o in_o the_o year_n 1408_o make_v mention_n of_o certain_a precedent_n by_o he_o establish_v at_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o paris_n not_o long_o ago_o say_v he_o it_o be_v propose_v and_o demand_v by_o our_o attorney_n general_n at_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o paris_n consist_v of_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n within_o our_o kingdom_n and_o dauphiny_a where_o our_o cousin_n lewes_n king_n of_o sicily_n our_o elder_a son_n duke_n of_o aquitain_n and_o viennois_n the_o duke_n of_o bourges_n our_o uncle_n by_o the_o father_n side_n the_o duke_n of_o burgundy_n our_o cousin_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o bourbon_n our_o uncle_n by_o the_o mother_n side_n do_v preside_v for_o we_o that_o the_o pope_n exaction_n and_o other_o grievance_n former_o rehearse_v may_v be_v utter_o abolish_v precedent_n 10_o king_n lewes_n the_o eleven_o cause_v a_o council_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n and_o all_o the_o vniversites_n to_o be_v assemble_v in_o the_o city_n of_o orleans_n to_o be_v more_o full_o inform_v in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n at_o which_o peter_n duke_n of_o bourbon_n lord_n of_o beavieu_o preside_v in_o steed_n of_o the_o king_n 1073._o 11_o there_o be_v precedent_n in_o store_n for_o england_n too_o william_n the_o first_o preside_v in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o rouen_n in_o the_o year_n 1073._o it_o be_v judge_v say_v a_o english_a author_n at_o a_o council_n hold_v in_o that_o city_n where_o william_n king_n of_o england_n be_v precedent_n that_o the_o monk_n which_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o crime_n shall_v be_v keep_v in_o close_a prison_n during_o the_o bishop_n pleasure_n the_o same_o king_n preside_v also_o at_o another_o hold_v before_o that_o at_o 129●6_n silchester_n in_o the_o year_n 1070_o whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v elsewhere_o in_o the_o year_n 1102_o or_o as_o other_o have_v it_o 1070_o anselm_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n call_v a_o general_n council_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o london_n and_o preside_v at_o it_o but_o it_o be_v with_o the_o consent_n and_o good_a will_n of_o henry_n the_o first_o where_o some_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n of_o great_a importance_n be_v treat_v of_o 12_o we_o can_v also_o produce_v some_o example_n for_o spain_n for_o he_o that_o shall_v read_v the_o counsel_n hold_v in_o that_o country_n ●ill_v easy_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o king_n have_v all_o the_o authority_n in_o they_o whensoever_o they_o be_v please_v to_o use_v it_o 13_o all_o the_o discourse_n which_o we_o have_v make_v upon_o this_o point_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n superfluous_a for_o have_v prove_v by_o so_o many_o example_n that_o king_n and_o prince_n call_v counsel_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o have_v also_o authority_n to_o preside_v in_o they_o which_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o always_o use_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n more_o apt_a to_o wield_v the_o sword_n than_o to_o manage_v a_o ecclesiastical_a action_n to_o give_v their_o opinion_n or_o cause_v other_o to_o opine_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n to_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o judgement_n and_o such_o like_a 1317._o for_o this_o reason_n ofttimes_o they_o leave_v all_o to_o the_o clergy_n without_o intermeddle_v themselves_o but_o when_o they_o be_v please_v to_o interpose_v they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v censure_v for_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o they_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_n they_o be_v high_o extol_v and_o commend_v for_o it_o and_o what_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o emperor_n by_o a_o archbishop_n of_o bulgaria_n be_v applyable_a to_o all_o prince_n within_o their_o own_o realm_n and_o dominion_n the_o emperor_n say_v he_o as_o the_o common-skilfull_a monarch_n of_o the_o church_n be_v precedent_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n and_o make_v they_o be_v in_o force_n he_o ordain_v ecclesiastical_a order_n he_o set_v law_n to_o the_o life_n and_o policy_n of_o those_o that_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n etc._n etc._n chap._n fourteen_o of_o the_o approbation_n and_o authorisation_n of_o counsel_n 1_o it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o authorise_a of_o counsel_n pop●_n which_o the_o pope_n in_o their_o book_n arrogate_v unto_o themselves_o exclusive_o to_o all_o other_o which_o be_v also_o
counsel_n to_o appease_v the_o quarrel_n and_o controversy_n among_o they_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n say_v it_o be_v assemble_v for_o the_o extirpation_n of_o error_n and_o heresy_n 2._o for_o the_o reformation_n of_o manner_n in_o the_o head_n and_o member_n and_o for_o the_o pacification_n of_o king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o all_o other_o christian_n now_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o this_o council_n all_o christendom_n be_v up_o in_o arm_n the_o pope_n be_v observe_v to_o make_v commotion_n to_o kindle_v war_n and_o sound_v a_o alarm_n i_o say_v not_o against_o those_o that_o be_v depart_v from_o his_o obedience_n but_o even_o against_o catholic_a prince_n henry_n the_o second_o king_n of_o france_n may_v serve_v for_o instance_n and_o when_o the_o pope_n please_v agreement_n be_v make_v all_o this_o while_n our_o council_n never_o say_v a_o word_n to_o it_o but_o like_o a_o snail_n draw_v in_o its_o horn_n and_o among_o all_o these_o tempest_n remain_v close_o shut_v up_o in_o its_o shell_n not_o dare_v show_v itself_o in_o such_o dainty_a affair_n let_v all_o thing_n pass_v as_o if_o it_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o they_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o blood_n of_o barbarian_n which_o be_v shed_v and_o not_o of_o the_o member_n of_o christ._n when_o there_o arise_v a_o controversy_n in_o the_o council_n betwixt_o the_o ambassador_n of_o france_n and_o spain_n about_o precedency_n our_o council_n continue_v in_o its_o accustom_a silence_n suffer_v the_o pope_n to_o interpose_v in_o it_o and_o to_o negotiate_v the_o accord_n after_o he_o have_v foment_v the_o quarrel_n in_o brief_a we_o may_v fit_o say_v this_o council_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o white_a wall_n upon_o which_o the_o pope_n may_v write_v what_o he_o list_v counsel_n that_o it_o move_v only_o by_o he_o that_o it_o be_v a_o pope_n council_n that_o be_v a_o council_n in_o name_n but_o a_o pope_n in_o deed_n 30_o as_o for_o the_o authority_n which_o we_o say_v the_o pope_n take_v upon_o he_o over_o the_o council_n it_o appear_v in_o that_o commandment_n which_o come_v from_o he_o for_o cense_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o two_o king_n both_o at_o once_o which_o be_v a_o occasion_n of_o dissension_n witness_n onuphrius_n who_o say_v platinam_fw-la there_o be_v a_o great_a controversy_n by_o reason_n that_o by_o command_n from_o the_o pope_n the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o two_o prince_n be_v both_o cense_v at_o once_o 31_o but_o lo_o here_o that_o which_o outgo_v all_o the_o rest_n i_o namely_o that_o pius_n the_o 4_o ordain_v by_o a_o bull_n of_o he_o p●●●_n that_o if_o the_o pope_n happen_v to_o die_v during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o council_n the_o election_n of_o a_o new_a pope_n shall_v belong_v to_o the_o cardinal_n only_o and_o not_o to_o the_o council_n which_o bull_n say_v the_o same_o onuphrius_n be_v confirm_v and_o approve_v by_o all_o the_o father_n of_o this_o council_n beside_o if_o they_o have_v not_o do_v so_o in_o express_a term_n the_o general_a decree_n will_v have_v be_v sufficient_a for_o it●_n whereby_o they_o have_v authorize_v all_o the_o pope_n canon_n and_o decree_n and_o beside_o have_v in_o express_a word_n advance_v the_o pope_n above_o the_o council_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o to_o all_o effect_n and_o purpose_n now_o the_o pope_n have_v make_v this_o decree_n during_o the_o time_n the_o council_n sit_v and_o the_o council_n have_v admit_v of_o it_o we_o may_v well_o conclude_v that_o it_o have_v resign_v its_o power_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o have_v advance_v he_o above_o itself_o 32_o now_o that_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n belong_v to_o the_o council_n be_v clear_a by_o that_o of_o constance_n in_o the_o fourteen_o session_n the_o holy_a general_n council_n of_o constance_n ordain_v that_o the_o next_o election_n of_o a_o pope_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v perform_v in_o such_o manner_n form_n place_n and_o time_n as_o shall_v be_v appoint_v by_o the_o sacred_a synod_n and_o that_o the_o say_a council_n may_v for_o the_o future_a qualify_v receive_v and_o depute_v such_o person_n as_o it_o shall_v think_v good_a of_o what_o estate_n and_o condition_n soever_o to_o make_v such_o election_n active_a and_o passive_a this_o decree_n be_v after_o confirm_v by_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n in_o the_o 37_o session_n the_o holy_a synod_n ordain_v that_o if_o the_o see_v apostolic_a happen_v to_o be_v void_a while_o this_o holy_a general_n council_n sit_v the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v in_o this_o place_n forbid_v it_o to_o be_v do_v in_o any_o other_o 33_o it_o be_v true_a the_o council_n of_o constance_n give_v the_o cardinal_n leave_v to_o proceed_v to_o the_o election_n but_o that_o be_v always_o with_o authority_n from_o the_o council_n so_o say_v the_o abbot_n of_o panormo_n in_o express_a term_n 2._o to_o avoid_v dissension_n it_o be_v obtain_v of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n that_o the_o say_a council_n shall_v for_o that_o time_n transfer_v their_o right_n upon_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n the_o same_o council_n of_o constance_n speak_v thus_o of_o it_o in_o the_o forty_o five_o session_n the_o holy_a general_n council_n of_o constance_n in_o execution_n of_o their_o ordinance_n decree_n and_o constitution_n touch_v the_o form_n of_o elect_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n for_o this_o turn_n to_o proceed_v to_o the_o say_a election_n have_v join_v to_o the_o right_n reverend_a cardinal_n with_o their_o express_a will_n and_o consent_n the_o reverend_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n &c_n &c_n there_o be_v thirty_o there_o nominate_v to_o proceed_v to_o the_o say_a election_n with_o the_o cardinal_n which_o be_v do_v at_o that_o time_n with_o their_o consent_n to_o avoid_v trouble_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o great_a power_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n do_v plain_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o be_v do_v afterward_o in_o the_o like_a case_n at_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n which_o give_v the_o cardinal_n no_o such_o power_n but_o make_v choice_n of_o other_o person_n to_o proceed_v to_o the_o same_o election_n without_o their_o consent_n for_o see_v what_o they_o say_v of_o it_o in_o the_o thirty_o seven_o session_n the_o say_a council_n do_v ordain_v and_o declare_v that_o the_o election_n of_o a_o pope_n shall_v for_o this_o turn_n be_v execute_v and_o perform_v by_o this_o sacred_a council_n of_o basil_n or_o at_o least_o by_o its_o authority_n according_a to_o the_o form_n already_o set_v down_o now_o the_o form_n be_v this_o that_o the_o cardinal_n which_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v may_v assist_v accidental_o at_o the_o say_a election_n with_o two_o and_o thirty_o other_o ecclesiastiques_n of_o all_o order_n always_o provide_v that_o they_o be_v subdeacons_n at_o least_o not_o by_o their_o own_o proper_a authority_n but_o by_o that_o of_o the_o council_n as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o these_o word_n counsel_n that_o they_o have_v free_a power_n to_o choose_v a_o pope_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o council_n 34_o beside_o it_o be_v not_o question_v in_o the_o council_n there_o whether_o the_o power_n of_o choose_v a_o pope_n belong_v to_o the_o council_n during_o the_o time_n of_o its_o celebration_n but_o only_o whether_o the_o council_n can_v depose_v the_o pope_n as_o we_o find_v it_o in_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n collect_v by_o aeneas_n silvius_n afterward_o call_v pope_n pius_n the_o second_o which_o teach_v we_o further_o that_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o cardinal_n be_v no_o way_n necessary_a but_o only_o grant_v to_o they_o in_o a_o compliment_n the_o father_n thought_n it_o requisite_a say_v he_o to_o take_v the_o election_n of_o a_o pope_n into_o consideration_n use_v the_o chief_a of_o they_o have_v consult_v about_o the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v it_o be_v propose_v and_o at_o last_o agree_v upon_o in_o full_a assmbly_n that_o two_o and_o thirty_o father_n who_o have_v take_v the_o order_n of_o deacon_n shall_v be_v select_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o council_n who_o have_v first_o take_v their_o oath_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o conclave_n with_o the_o cardinal_n of_o arles_n to_o choose_v the_o pope_n this_o be_v thus_o determine_v by_o these_o two_o counsel_n it_o be_v needless_a to_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o doctor_n and_o divine_v as_o of_o james_n almain_n in_o his_o lecture_n de_fw-fr potestate_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la mr._n john_n gerson_n chancellor_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n in_o his_o tract_n de_fw-fr potestate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la and_o his_o other_o de_fw-fr substractione_fw-la papae_fw-la erga_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la and_o other_o which_o hold_v in_o terminis_fw-la that_o during_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o council_n it_o belong_v to_o it_o and_o not_o to_o the_o cardinal_n to_o proceed_v to_o the_o election_n
quarantain_n of_o true_a pardon_n 40_o and_o the_o say_a pardon_n and_o indulgence_n here_o above_o mention_v be_v grant_v only_o to_o the_o brother_n and_o sister_n of_o the_o say_a fraternity_n which_o shall_v upon_o the_o day_n aforesaid_a every_o year_n visit_v the_o say_a altar_n in_o that_o church_n of_o st._n hilary_n of_o chartres_n upon_o which_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n and_o precious_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v place_v 41_o medard_n thiersault_n priest_n licentiat_fw-la in_o the_o law_n canon_n of_o chartres_n official_a and_o vicar_n general_n both_o in_o the_o spiritualty_n and_o temporalty_n of_o the_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n mounseur_fw-fr lewes_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a see_n apostolic_a bishop_n of_o chartres_n to_o all_o and_o singular_a the_o parson_n and_o vicar_n of_o the_o church_n within_o the_o city_n of_o chartres_n send_v greeting_n ●n_o our_o lord_n god_n everlasting_a pope_n paul_n the_o three_o of_o happy_a memory_n do_v heretofore_o of_o his_o own_o proper_a motion_n for_o the_o honour_n &_o reverence_n of_o the_o precious_a bless_a sacrament_n grant_v unto_o the_o brother_n of_o the_o fraternity_n of_o the_o bless_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o minerva_n of_o rome_n certain_a indulgence_n plenary_a remission_n of_o sin_n immunity_n and_o other_o grace_n the_o good_a devotion_n and_o upon_o petition_n of_o the_o faithful_a christian_a brother_n which_o indulgence_n and_o plenary_a remission_n of_o sin_n our_o holy_a father_n julius_n the_o three_o by_o the_o divine_a providence_n pope_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o christian_n shall_v press_v more_o earnest_o and_o devout_o to_o come_v and_o honour_v the_o so_o admirable_a bless_a sacrament_n of_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o dignity_n have_v will_v and_o decree_v that_o they_o be_v of_o perpetual_a force_n and_o efficacy_n and_o these_o indulgence_n and_o other_o grace_n aforesaid_a at_o the_o instance_n and_o request_n of_o the_o most_o noble_a personage_n mr._n christopher_n de_fw-fr herovard_n the_o lieutenant_n general_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n within_o the_o bailiwicke_n of_o chartres_n require_v have_v communicate_v and_o grant_v they_o to_o the_o brother_n and_o sister_n of_o the_o fraternity_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n heretofore_o institute_v and_o erect_v in_o the_o church_n of_o saint_n hilary_n of_o chartres_n always_o provide_v that_o like_a grace_n and_o gift_n be_v not_o former_o grant_v to_o any_o other_o church_n of_o the_o say_a city_n of_o chartres_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o have_v view_v the_o content_n of_o the_o say_a indulgence_n in_o the_o public_a instrument_n out_o of_o the_o copy_n of_o domenic_n bishop_n of_o hostia_fw-la cardinal_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n by_o title_n traven_n deane_n of_o the_o sacred_a apostolical_a college_n protector_n and_o patron_n of_o the_o devout_a and_o catholic_a fraternity_n of_o the_o bless_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n found_v in_o the_o church_n of_o our_o lady_n of_o minerva_n of_o the_o order_n of_o friar_n predicant_o in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n in_o manner_n of_o a_o exemplification_n publish_v draw_v sign_v and_o seal_v by_o genese_n bulter_n secretary_n to_o the_o say_a fraternity_n give_v at_o rome_n the_o six_o of_o may_n one_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o and_o furthermore_o whereas_o by_o a_o certain_a declaration_n make_v unto_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o command_n and_o with_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n the_o lord_n bishop_n of_o chartres_n and_o as_o it_o seem_v to_o we_o true_o and_o lawful_o make_v that_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o like_a grace_n be_v never_o grant_v to_o any_o other_o church_n in_o the_o city_n of_o chartres_n wherefore_o we_o command_v you_o to_o publish_v and_o cause_n to_o be_v publish_v in_o your_o church_n the_o say_a indulgence_n and_o the_o exemplification_n of_o the_o letter_n aforesaid_a according_a to_o their_o form_n and_o tenure_n give_v leave_n to_o the_o say_a mr._n christopher_n de_fw-fr herovard_n to_o cause_v the_o say_a grace_n and_o indulgence_n to_o be_v publish_v within_o the_o city_n and_o suburb_n of_o chartres_n whether_o by_o siquis_n or_o otherwise_o as_o the_o same_o herovard_n shall_v think_v good_a give_v at_o chartres_n under_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o chamber_n of_o the_o say_v reverend_a father_n in_o god_n the_o bishop_n of_o chartres_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o upon_o thursday_n be_v the_o last_o of_o july_n subscribe_v p._n le_fw-fr seneux_n 42_o see_v here_o how_o the_o pope_n play_n with_o their_o indulgence_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n two_o of_o they_o which_o preside_v by_o their_o legate_n at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o wit_n paul_n the_o three_o and_o julius_n the_o three_o the_o reformation_n of_o such_o abuse_n be_v require_v heretofore_o in_o such_o general_n counsel_n as_o be_v then_o hold_v as_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o menda_n in_o that_o of_o vienna_n in_o dauphiny_a 15._o who_o among_o other_o point_n by_o he_o propose_v unto_o the_o say_a council_n put_v this_o for_o one_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o provide_v a_o competent_a remedy_n for_o this_o and_o beside_o to_o cause_v the_o fee_n of_o the_o currier_n and_o nuncio_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o cease_v we_o have_v tell_v you_o elsewhere_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o panormo_n ba●il_n that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o too_o hasty_a break_v up_o of_o that_o council_n by_o clement_n the_o five_o that_o reformation_n be_v never_o meddle_v with_o 40._o 43_o among_o other_o article_n propose_v by_o divers_a nation_n at_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n touch_v the_o point_n of_o reformation_n this_o about_o indulgence_n be_v one_o upon_o which_o they_o be_v to_o deliberate_v after_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o pope_n martino●_n but_o martin_n the_o five_o be_v elect_v he_o refer_v the_o case_n to_o another_o time_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o mr._n john_n gerson_n chancellor_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n be_v present_a at_o the_o same_o council_n indulg_n and_o in_o very_a much_o repute_n and_o authority_n both_o in_o behalf_n of_o the_o university_n and_o as_o deputy_n for_o charles_n the_o six_o king_n of_o france_n we_o will_v here_o make_v he_o declare_v his_o belief_n in_o matter_n of_o indulgence_n behold_v here_o his_o article_n 5._o 44_o the_o only_a supreme_a pope_n christ_n together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v by_o a_o plenary_a authority_n grant_v a_o total_a indulgence_n as_o well_o from_o punishment_n as_o fault_n 6._o 45_o the_o only_a pope_n christ_n can_v commute_v eternal_a punishment_n into_o temporal_a or_o absolve_v from_o punishment_n free_o and_o without_o any_o merit_n beside_o his_o own_o 46_o the_o only_a pope_n christ_n can_v give_v indulgence_n for_o so_o many_o thousand_o million_o of_o day_n and_o year_n as_o we_o find_v in_o divers_a grant_n of_o pope_n and_o other_o indulg●●ce●_n in_o divers_a time_n and_o place_n and_o upon_o divers_a occasion_n 47_o the_o grant_v of_o indulgence_n for_o so_o many_o million_o 10._o not_o only_o of_o day_n but_o year_n seem_v impossible_a to_o be_v maintain_v without_o great_a difficulty_n after_o remission_n of_o eternal_a punishment_n and_o commutation_n into_o temporal_a for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o particular_a man_n can_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v penance_n so_o many_o year_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o can_v live_v the_o thousand_o part_n of_o those_o year_n and_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o impossibility_n it_o be_v also_o certain_a that_o purgatory_n shall_v cease_v at_o the_o world_n end_n and_o consequent_o the_o day_n of_o his_o penance_n too_o 48_o from_o hell_n there_o be_v no_o redemption_n 11●_n at_o the_o end_n of_o that_o tract_n he_o have_v these_o verse_n arbitrio_fw-la papa_n proprio_fw-la si_fw-la clavibus_fw-la uti_fw-la indulgential_a posset_n cur_n sinit_fw-la ut_fw-la poena_fw-la pios_fw-la cruciet_fw-la cur_n non_fw-la evacuat_fw-la loca_fw-la purgandis_fw-la animabus_fw-la tradita_fw-la if_o so_o the_o pope_n may_v use_v the_o key_n a●'s_v pleasure_n why_o do_v he_o let_v good_a man_n such_o pain_n endure_v why_o do_v he_o not_o too_o cruel_a and_o unkind_a empty_v the_o place_n for_o purge_v soul_n design_v 49_o now_o whereas_o he_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n indulgence_n do_v not_o reach_v so_o far_o as_o hell_n that_o be_v heretical_a as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o article_n by_o he_o set_v down_o anc●na_n for_o other_o doctor_n hold_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v lord_n of_o the_o world_n that_o he_o officiat_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n vicar_n both_o in_o thing_n celestial_a terrestrial_a and_o infernal_a angustin_n de_fw-fr ancona_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n as_o well_o as_o the_o former_a author_n argue_v thus_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o indulgence_n
the_o frequency_n of_o counsel_n 1_o it_o be_v a_o great_a advantage_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v get_v year_n that_o there_o must_v be_v no_o more_o general_n counsel_n but_o when_o he_o please_v for_o lo_o here_o the_o decree_n of_o our_o council_n fi●em_fw-la if_o it_o chance_v that_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n which_o it_o think_v there_o be_v not_o that_o require_v further_a declaration_n or_o determination_n beside_o other_o remedy_n appoint_v in_o this_o council_n the_o holy_a synod_n trust_v that_o the_o most_o bless_a bishop_n of_o rome_n either_o by_o call_v forth_o those_o who_o he_o shall_v think_v most_o fit_a to_o treat_v about_o such_o a_o business_n out_o of_o those_o province_n especial_o where_o such_o difficulty_n shall_v arise_v or_o by_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o general_n council_n if_o he_o think_v it_o needful_a or_o by_o any_o other_o more_o commodious_a way_n as_o he_o shall_v think_v good_a will_v take_v care_n that_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o province_n be_v provide_v for_o for_o god_n glory_n and_o the_o church_n peace_n 2_o this_o be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o make_v the_o pope_n past_o breech_a past_a tutor_n and_o correction_n to_o take_v away_o that_o frequent_a celebration_n of_o counsel'_v and_o leave_v the_o convocation_n of_o they_o to_o their_o courtesy_n be_v as_o much_o to_o give_v the_o rod_n wherewith_o the_o master_n have_v whip_v he_o into_o the_o scholar_n hand_n to_o do_v what_o he_o please_v with_o it_o the_o pope_n when_o they_o be_v monstrous_o debauch_v in_o a_o monstrous_a fashion_n and_o give_v over_o to_o all_o manner_n of_o vice_n abomination_n and_o impiety_n be_v curb_v and_o bring_v under_o to_o some_o discipline_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o pisa_n constance_n sienna_n basil_n lausanne_n and_o the_o second_o of_o pisa._n where_o many_o of_o their_o pope_n be_v depose_v where_o many_o good_a rule_n be_v make_v for_o the_o hold_n of_o counsel_n tend_v principal_o to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n where_o it_o be_v religious_o ordain_v that_o general_n counsel_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o celebrate_v every_o ten_o year_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o prolong_v the_o term_n but_o may_v abridge_v it_o if_o need_v require_v see_v here_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n 39_o we_o ordain_v and_o decree_v by_o this_o perpetual_a edict_n that_o from_o this_o time_n forward_o general_n counsel_n shall_v be_v hold_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o first_o that_o shall_v be_v hold_v after_o this_o shall_v be_v within_o five_o year_n next_o follow_v and_o the_o next_o after_o that_o within_o seven_o year_n immediate_o reckon_v from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o former_a and_o always_o after_o from_o ten_o year_n to_o ten_o year_n for_o ever_o and_o afterward_o which_o term_v the_o supreme_a bishop_n may_v abridge_v upon_o some_o occasion_n which_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v with_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o brethren_n the_o cardinal_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n but_o he_o may_v not_o protract_v it_o in_o any_o wise_a 3_o this_o same_o decree_n be_v set_v down_o word_n for_o word_n in_o the_o first_o session_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o confirm_v by_o it_o 11._o and_o in_o the_o eleven_o session_n be_v add_v this_o exposition_n of_o it_o this_o holy_a synod_n do_v further_a declare_v that_o these_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n that_o it_o can_v be_v prolong_v in_o any_o wise_a ought_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o way_n of_o forbiddance_n or_o prohibition_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o can_v be_v prolong_v even_o by_o the_o pope_n himself_o it_o be_v the_o three_o time_n repeat_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o sixteen_o session_n princip_n these_o same_o decree_n of_o these_o two_o counsel_n be_v transcribe_v word_n for_o word_n into_o the_o second_o of_o pisa_n at_o the_o beginning_n and_o confirm_v by_o it_o antiquity_n show_v we_o plain_o that_o after_o the_o christian_n be_v at_o liberty_n general_n counsel_n be_v very_o frequent_a counsel_n relatis_fw-la 4_o the_o fruit_n that_o spring_v from_o the_o frequency_n of_o these_o counsel_n be_v recommend_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o decree_n abovementioned_a where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o principal_a tillage_n of_o the_o lord_n field_n that_o it_o extirpate_v heresy_n schism_n error_n correct_v excess_n reform_v what_o be_v amiss_o make_v the_o vineyard_n of_o the_o lord_n fertile_a whereas_o the_o cessation_n of_o they_o on_o the_o other_o side_n produce_v quite_o contrary_a effect_n as_o it_o be_v there_o deliver_v with_o this_o addition_n that_o the_o memory_n of_o time_n past_a and_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o present_a make_v they_o eye-witness_n of_o it_o whereunto_o we_o will_v add_v the_o testimony_n of_o mr._n john_n gerson_n 10._o there_o never_o be_v heretofore_o nor_o ever_o will_v be_v hereafter_o a_o more_o pernicious_a plague_n in_o the_o church_n than_o the_o omission_n of_o general_n counsel_n whether_o in_o the_o matter_n or_o in_o the_o authority_n and_o in_o another_o place_n fine_a if_o so_o great_a and_o such_o enormous_a danger_n have_v befall_v the_o church_n of_o god_n since_o the_o celebration_n of_o general_n counsel_n have_v be_v intermit_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o see_v how_o useful_a and_o commodious_a the_o frequent_a celebration_n of_o they_o will_v be_v 5_o he_o be_v a_o very_a novice_n in_o the_o history_n of_o late_a time_n which_o know_v not_o the_o shift_n and_o evasion_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v use_v about_o the_o hold_n of_o general_n counsel_n even_o after_o they_o have_v by_o solemn_a oath_n bind_v themselves_o to_o hold_v they_o and_o the_o wile_n they_o have_v use_v to_o disannul_v and_o dissolve_v they_o the_o bicker_n and_o dispute_n they_o have_v have_v with_o counsel_n themselves_o about_o that_o matter_n whereof_o we_o make_v mention_n in_o divers_a part_n of_o this_o discourse_n the_o same_o gerson_n witness_v as_o much_o in_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n abuse_n the_o plenitude_n of_o their_o power_n in_o that_o they_o will_v not_o celebrate_v general_n counsel_n 6_o everard_n bishop_n of_o salisburg_n in_o a_o imperial_a diet_n of_o germany_n hold_v about_o two_o hundred_o ●●ares_n ago_o speak_v thus_o of_o this_o matter_n boiorum_fw-la he_o that_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o servant_n desire_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o be_v a_o god_n he_o sleight_n sacred_a assembly_n and_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o brethren_n yea_o of_o his_o master_n he_o be_v afraid_a lest_o he_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o give_v account_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o commit_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o against_o the_o law_n schismate_fw-la 7_o zabarel_n cardinal_n of_o florence_n who_o write_v a_o little_a before_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n say_v the_o ancient_a custom_n be_v that_o all_o difficult_a case_n shall_v be_v determine_v by_o a_o council_n the_o convocation_n whereof_o be_v frequent_a but_o in_o after_o time_n certain_a pope_n that_o have_v govern_v the_o church_n rather_o like_o earthly_a prince_n than_o like_v apostle_n never_o take_v any_o great_a care_n to_o call_v they_o from_o which_o neglect_n have_v spring_v much_o mischief_n 8_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr paradiso_n say_v ecclesia_fw-la they_o tremble_v to_o hear_v any_o man_n speak_v of_o the_o call_n of_o a_o general_n council_n know_v by_o experience_n that_o counsel_n do_v not_o deal_v gentle_o but_o correct_v and_o amend_v without_o respect_n of_o person_n and_o indeed_o the_o emperor_n and_o prince_n who_o in_o these_o late_a time_n have_v quite_o let_v go_v the_o reins_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n through_o ignorance_n of_o their_o right_n be_v force_v to_o resume_v their_o authority_n and_o proceed_v to_o the_o convocation_n of_o counsel_n against_o the_o pope_n will_n 9_o so_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o cheat_v of_o christendom_n above_o board_n to_o leave_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o general_n counsel_n to_o the_o pope_n will_n and_o pleasure_n abolish_n by_o this_o mean_v the_o good_a order_n establish_v by_o the_o counsel_n aforesaid_a which_o be_v receive_v and_o confirm_v by_o our_o pragmatique_a sanction_n where_o the_o say_v decree_n be_v transcribe_v word_n for_o word_n which_o give_v occasion_n to_o king_n charles_n the_o nine_o to_o require_v by_o his_o ambassador_n at_o trent_n the_o celebration_n of_o general_n counsel_n every_o ten_o year_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o demands●_n to_o which_o no_o regard_n be_v have_v because_o this_o entrench_v upon_o the_o pope_n authority_n who_o by_o this_o kind_n of_o suppression_n of_o general_n counsel_n hook_v all_o the_o power_n of_o they_o unto_o himself_o chap._n vii_o of_o the_o jesuit_n 1_o the_o order_n of_o jesuit_n institute_v by_o the_o two_o pope_n paul_n and_o julius_n the_o three_o vassal_n the_o
monastery_n shall_v not_o in_o that_o case_n enjoy_v their_o privilege_n of_o exemption_n but_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o ordinaries●_n without_o any_o commission_n or_o delegation_n from_o the_o pope_n we_o ordain_v by_o a_o irrefragable_a decree_n that_o howsoever_o exempt_v person_n enjoy_v their_o liberty_n yet_o upon_o any_o offence_n contract_n or_o such_o thing_n for_o which_o a_o man_n may_v have_v a_o s●te_n against_o they_o they_o may_v be_v convent_v before_o the_o ordinary_a of_o the_o place_n and_o the_o gloss_n upon_o it_o this_o be_v true_a if_o the_o contract_n be_v make_v or_o the_o crime_n commit_v in_o a_o place_n not_o exempt_v and_o if_o the_o thing_n in_o controversy_n be_v not_o exempt_a 6._o so_o scholar_n not_o reside_v in_o the_o university_n do_v not_o enjoy_v the_o privilege_n grant_v unto_o they_o so_o a_o notat_fw-la clerk_n take_v in_o a_o crime_n have_v not_o his_o clericall_a habit_n on_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o secular_a judge_n 7_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o twenty_o first_o session_n bishop_n be_v allow_v as_o delegate_n for_o the_o see_v apostolic_a to_o assign_v unto_o all_o such_o cathedral_n and_o collegiate_n church_n as_o have_v no_o ordinary_a distribution_n the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o fruit_n and_o revenue_n to_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o say_a distribution_n which_o be_v repeat_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o twenty_o second_o session_n this_o derogate_v from_o the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n to_o who_o the_o right_a of_o provide_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n subject_n unto_o they_o do_v belong_v as_o 6._o to_o adjudge_v the_o ten_o to_o a_o archdeaconry_n which_o have_v but_o little_a mean_n to_o dignit_v join_v and_o unite_v chapel_n to_o a_o cathedral_n church_n upon_o evident_a necessity_n or_o commodity_n to_o 6._o alter_v and_o give_v away_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o just_a and_o honest_a reason_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o chapter_n therefore_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n they_o may_v convert_v some_o part_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o live_n to_o ordinary_a distribution_n upon_o just_a and_o lawful_a cause_n with_o consent_n of_o the_o chapter_n without_o authority_n from_o the_o pope_n or_o without_o any_o necessity_n of_o his_o commission_n which_o be_v valid_a in_o this_o realm_n of_o france_n especial_o where_o the_o pope_n power_n be_v regulate_v according_a to_o the_o ancient_a canon_n and_o decree_n 8_o by_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o twenty_o first_o session_n the_o bishop_n be_v delegate_n for_o the_o see_v apostolic_a to_o compel_v the_o rectour_n of_o church_n within_o their_o diocese_n to_o take_v priest_n to_o assist_v they_o at_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o case_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v it_o themselves_o commissary_n and_o by_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o session_n they_o be_v also_o make_v commissary_n and_o delegate_n to_o assign_v substitute_n and_o assistant_n to_o unlearned_a and_o ignorant_a rector_n of_o church_n which_o be_v also_o decree_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n to_o who_o of_o common_a right_n it_o appertain_v to_o appoint_v such_o assistant_n even_o according_a to_o the_o decretal_n of_o lucius_n the_o three_o and_o honorius_n the_o three_o aegrotant_fw-la whereby_o they_o declare_v that_o bishop_n have_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o appoint_v coadjutour_n to_o rectour_n of_o church_n in_o such_o case_n 9_o in_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o twenty_o first_o session_n power_n be_v give_v to_o bishop_n as_o delegate_n for_o the_o pope_n to_o unite_v church_n and_o benefice_n in_o case_n of_o poverty_n and_o such_o like_v permit_v by_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o agree_v unto_o they_o by_o their_o own_o proper_a right_n even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o celestine_n the_o three_o 1._o it_o belong_v unto_o the_o bishop_n say_v he_o to_o unite_v the_o church_n of_o his_o diocese_n and_o to_o set_v one_o over_o another_o which_o be_v elsewhere_o repeat_v by_o the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o it_o be_v confirm_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o six_o article_n of_o the_o ordinance_n of_o orleans_n see_v here_o the_o word_n and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o curate_n may_v employ_v themselves_o in_o their_o charge_n without_o all_o excuse_n we_o enjoin_v prelate_n to_o proceed_v to_o the_o union_n of_o benefice_n distribution_n of_o tithe_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a revenue_n 10_o by_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o session_n power_n be_v also_o grant_v they_o as_o delegate_n for_o the_o pope_n to_o transfer_v the_o simple_a live_n belong_v to_o ruinate_a church_n which_o can_v be_v repair_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o poverty_n upon_o the_o mother_n church_n or_o other_o in_o the_o diocese_n have_v call_v unto_o they_o such_o as_o be_v interest_v in_o they_o howbeit_o by_o the_o same_o decretal_a of_o celestine_n bishop_n may_v submit_v one_o church_n to_o another_o with_o consent_n of_o the_o chapter_n by_o their_o own_o authority_n without_o any_o intervening_a of_o the_o pope_n 11_o the_o same_o council_n in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o the_o seven_o session_n make_v bishop_n the_o pope_n delegate_n for_o the_o visitation_n and_o reparation_n of_o exempt_v church_n the_o ordinary_n of_o the_o place_n shall_v be_v bind_v every_o year_n to_o visit_v all_o the_o church_n even_o such_o as_o be_v exempt_v in_o what_o kind_n soever_o by_o authority_n apostolic_a and_o to_o take_v order_n by_o such_o remedy_n as_o be_v according_a to_o law_n that_o those_o which_o stand_v in_o need_n be_v repair_v and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o unprovided_a of_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n if_o any_o have_v it_o over_o they_o nor_o of_o other_o duty_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v find_v due_a it_o ordain_v the_o like_a for_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o within_o any_o diocese_n in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n of_o the_o twenty_o four_o session_n all_o this_o derogate_v from_o the_o eleven_o article_n of_o the_o ordinance_n of_o orleans_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o abbat_n abbess_n priour_n prioress_n not_o be_v head_n of_o the_o order_n together_o with_o all_o canon_n and_o chapter_n as_o well_o secular_a as_o regular_n whether_o of_o cathedral_n or_o collegiate_n church_n shall_v be_v equal_o subject_a to_o the_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n so_o as_o they_o can_v help_v themselves_o by_o any_o privilege_n of_o exemption_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o visitation_n and_o punishment_n of_o their_o crime_n by_o this_o ordinance_n the_o visitation_n belong_v to_o the_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n by_o the_o council_n it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v confer_v upon_o the_o prelate_n as_o his_o commissary_n 12_o there_o be_v yet_o more_o which_o be_v that_o by_o the_o same_o council_n the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n can_v visit_v the_o church_n and_o benefice_n of_o their_o diocese_n and_o take_v order_n for_o the_o reparation_n of_o other_o thing_n necessary_a but_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o delegation_n for_o behold_v what_o be_v ordain_v concern_v it_o in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o the_o twenty_o first_o session_n it_o be_v reason_n that_o the_o ordinary_a do_v diligent_o provide_v for_o all_o that_o concern_v divine_a service_n within_o the_o diocese_n wherefore_o the_o monastery_n in_o commendam_fw-la the_o abbey_n priory_n provostship_n not_o tie_v to_o a_o regular_a observance_n as_o also_o the_o benefice_n whether_o they_o have_v cure_v of_o soul_n or_o no_o secular_a and_o regular_a in_o what_o kind_n soever_o of_o commendam_fw-la they_o be_v hold_v even_o such_o as_o be_v exempt_v shall_v be_v visit_v by_o the_o same_o bishop_n as_o delegate_n for_o the_o see_v apostolic_a hospital_n and_o the_o same_o bishop_n shall_v take_v care_n by_o convenient_a remedy_n even_o by_o sequestration_n of_o fruit_n that_o necessary_a reparation_n be_v make_v and_o do_v by_o this_o chapter_n the_o bishop_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o ordinary_a power_n in_o case_n of_o visitation_n in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v now_o make_v commissary_n in_o that_o respect_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o tarraco_n register_v in_o gratian'ss_n decret_a 526._o we_o ordain_v that_o the_o order_n of_o ancient_a custom_n be_v observe_v and_o that_o diocese_n be_v visit_v by_o the_o bishop_n every_o year_n and_o if_o any_o church_n be_v find_v destitute_a that_o the_o reparation_n thereof_o be_v enjoin_v by_o his_o ordinance_n item_n against_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o four_o council_n of_o toledo_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o bishop_n ought_v every_o year_n to_o go_v over_o all_o the_o diocese_n and_o in_o every_o parish_n to_o inquire_v
in_o what_o need_n of_o reparation_n the_o church_n stand_v 1._o 13_o the_o royal_a jurisdiction_n in_o france_n suffer_v prejudice_n hereby_o consider_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o lay_v judge_n to_o take_v order_n for_o such_o reparation_n as_o we_o shall_v prove_v in_o another_o place_n hereafter_o but_o that_o which_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o the_o twenty_o four_o session_n be_v yet_o more_o exorbitant_a namely_o that_o the_o bishop_n as_o delegate_n of_o the_o holy_a see_v have_v power_n to_o ordain_v rule_n punish_v and_o execute_v according_a to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o canon_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o visitation_n and_o correction_n of_o their_o subject_n whence_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o if_o a_o bishop_n condemn_v any_o of_o the_o people_n under_o his_o jurisdiction_n for_o eat_v a_o egg_n in_o lent_n or_o any_o such_o like_a thing_n he_o must_v trudge_v to_o rome_n to_o get_v his_o sentence_n make_v good_a 14_o the_o like_a here_o be_v decree_v concern_v the_o visitation_n of_o hospital_n fraternity_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o sacred_a place_n college_n and_o school_n 8._o for_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o say_a bishop_n as_o delegate_n for_o the_o pope_n although_o it_o belong_v unto_o they_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o vienna_n hold_v under_o clement_n the_o five_o 7._o at_o least_o for_o asmuch_o as_n concern_v hospital_n and_o in_o our_o france_n such_o visitation_n belong_v to_o the_o lay_v judge_n and_o especial_o to_o the_o great_a almoner_n who_o have_v the_o super-intendence_a of_o they_o so_o say_v king_n henry_n the_o second_o in_o express_a term_n in_o his_o ordinance_n of_o the_o year_n 1552_o our_o great_a almoner_n say_v he_o have_v the_o super-intendence_a &_o cognizance_n over_o the_o hospital_n and_o spital_n of_o our_o kingdom_n that_o they_o be_v well_o and_o du_o maintain_v as_o well_o for_o the_o reparation_n of_o they_o as_o for_o the_o employment_n of_o the_o movable_a good_n thereunto_o belong_v and_o whether_o the_o poor_a sick_a folk_n and_o distress_a person_n resort_v unto_o the_o say_a hospital_n be_v entertain_v and_o lodge_v maintain_v and_o feed_v according_a to_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o say_a hospital_n as_o also_o to_o compel_v the_o master_n and_o administratour_n of_o such_o hospital_n to_o make_v account_n of_o the_o say_a mean_n and_o revenue_n see_v here_o that_o which_o comprise_v every_o part_n of_o the_o visitation_n and_o all_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o office_n of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v the_o visitor_n 4._o 15_o by_o another_o ordinance_n of_o king_n francis_n date_v the_o fifteen_o of_o januarie_n 1546_o the_o visitation_n of_o the_o say_a hospital_n and_o other_o charitable_a place_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o judge_n royal_a ordinary_n of_o the_o place_n where_o such_o hospital_n be_v situate_a all_o governor_n and_o administratour_n of_o hospital_n or_o other_o charitable_a foundation_n shall_v be_v compel_v by_o our_o judge_n of_o the_o place_n next_o adjoin_v to_o give_v up_o their_o account_n of_o the_o revenue_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o say_a hospital_n by_o what_o title_n soever_o they_o hold_v they_o together_o with_o the_o charter_n and_o title_n of_o their_o foundation_n if_o they_o have_v any_o within_o two_o month_n after_o the_o publication_n of_o these_o present_n who_o we_o command_v and_o express_o enjoin_v every_o one_o respective_o within_o his_o precinct_n and_o jurisdiction_n that_o immediate_o after_o the_o publication_n of_o these_o present_n they_o visit_v the_o say_a hospital_n and_o charitable_a foundation_n to_o inquire_v of_o the_o revenue_n estate_n and_o reparation_n of_o the_o place_n and_o the_o number_n of_o bed_n and_o poor_a people_n who_o they_o shall_v find_v there_o it_o be_v true_a that_o upon_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o say_a ordinance_n there_o be_v some_o opposition_n make_v by_o certain_a bishop_n and_o abbat_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o by_o the_o grand_a almoner_n but_o upon_o the_o say_a opposition_n there_o be_v no_o more_o decree_v by_o the_o court_n of_o parliament_n of_o paris_n but_o this_o that_o out_o any_o regard_n thereunto_o have_v they_o shall_v proceed_v to_o the_o publication_n w●●●_n ordain_v nevertheless_o that_o within_o every_o one_o of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a precinct_n each_o ordinary_a bishop_n or_o abbot_n &_o the_o grand_a almoner_n may_v commit_v and_o delegate_v one_o or_o two_o honest_a man_n to_o assist_v the_o judge_n who_o be_v to_o execute_v the_o say_a letter_n patents●_n 1545._o yet_o without_o hinder_v or_o contradict_v the_o say_a judge_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o that_o the_o king_n will_v and_o pleasure_n may_v be_v put_v in_o execution_n this_o ordinance_n be_v yet_o further_o confirm_v by_o another_o of_o the_o same_o king_n francis_n date_v the_o six_o of_o february_n 1546._o and_o by_o another_o of_o henry_n the_o second_o the_o twelve_o of_o february_n 1553._o 16_o with_o better_a reason_n may_v we_o say_v that_o the_o visitation_n of_o school_n erect_v for_o the_o institution_n of_o youth_n shall_v belong_v to_o lay_v judge_n howsoever_o it_o be_v such_o visitation_n be_v not_o case_n reserve●_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o this_o delegation_n be_v against_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n as_o be_v that_o also_o which_o be_v grant_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o execution_n of_o thing_n give_v to_o pious_a use_n in_o such_o case_n as_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o law_n 22._o the_o bishop_n say_v the_o council_n as_o delegate_n for_o the_o see_v apostolic_a shall_v be_v executour_n of_o all_o pious_a donation_n give_v as_o well_o by_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n as_o by_o those_o which_o be_v yet_o alive_a in_o such_o case_n as_o be_v permit_v by_o the_o law_n now_o by_o the_o ancient_a decree_n they_o be_v executour_n of_o such_o donation_n jure_fw-la proprio_fw-la witness_v gregory_n the_o nine_o in_o a_o decretal_a of_o his_o t●s●am_n be_v it_o that_o all_o testament_n to_o pious_a use_n shall_v be_v take_v care_n for_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o ●he_n place_n and_o that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v confirm_v according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o decease_a howbeit_o the_o testatour_n themselves_o shall_v have_v prohibit_v etc._n etc._n which_o he_o further_o confirm_v in_o another_o decretal_a cl●r_n the_o executour_n appoint_v by_o the_o testatour_n after_o they_o have_v undertake_v that_o charge_n ought_v to_o be_v compel_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n to_o perform_v the_o will_n of_o the_o testatour_n the_o like_a be_v ord●in●●_n by_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o emperor_n anthemius_n if_o the_o t●statour_n say_v he_o have_v express_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o legacy_n or_o testament_n in_o trust_n give_v to_o pious_a use_n without_o appoint_v the_o party_n that_o shall_v be_v executor_n of_o his_o will_n the_o reverend_a bishop_n of_o the_o city_n where_o the_o testatour_n be_v bear_v have_v power_n to_o exact_v what_o be_v bequeath_v to_o that_o end_n execute_v the_o holy_a intention_n of_o the_o decease_a without_o any_o delay_n 17_o a_o man_n may_v observe_v divers_a other_o article_n of_o this_o council_n where_o such_o delegation_n be_v grant_v to_o bishop_n and_o ordinary_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o annihilate_v their_o entire_a jurisdiction_n and_o devolve_v it_o upon_o the_o pope_n that_o so_o all_o may_v depend_v upon_o he_o and_o his_o power_n may_v be_v so_o much_o the_o great_a wherein_o many_o man_n be_v prejudice_v to_o wit_n the_o bishop_n who_o lose_v that_o which_o belong_v unto_o they_o have_v it_o only_o by_o way_n of_o loan_n or_o in_o a_o precarious_a manner_n the_o metropolitan_o who_o be_v hereby_o deprive_v of_o the_o appeal_n which_o shall_v come_v unto_o they_o from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o lawyer_n as_o well_o ecclesiastical_a as_o lay_v who_o must_v be_v constrain_v to_o go_v to_o rome_n either_o to_o void_a the_o appeal_n which_o will_v be_v put_v in_o or_o at_o least_o to_o get_v new_a commissioner_n in_o case_n he_o fail_v to_o appoint_v the_o judgement_n in_o partibus_fw-la according_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o france_n which_o will_v be_v as_o great_a a_o foil_n as_o can_v be_v imagine_v 18_o we●_n will_v now_o speak_v of_o evocation_n which_o be_v another_o mighty_a mean_n for_o the_o pope_n to_o make_v he_o absolute_a lord_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a justice_n to_o get_v the_o cognizance_n of_o all_o cause_n which_o he_o shall_v think_v good_a to_o make_v his_o court_n more_o frequent_v than_o ever_o it_o be_v this_o council_n after_o it_o have_v decree_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o cause_n can_v be_v take_v from_o the_o ordinary_n by_o any_o extraordinary_a commission_n evocation_n nor_o appeal_n it_o add_v except_o in_o such_o cause_n as_o aught_o to_o be_v try_v
bernard_n reprove_v the_o pope_n for_o trouble_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n by_o exempt_n abbat_n and_o other_o subject_n to_o bishop_n submit_v they_o to_o himself_o immediate_o loc_n 4_o the_o same_o durant_n maintain_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o power_n to_o grant_v such_o exemption_n consider_v that_o they_o overthrow_v the_o general_a order_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o proceed_v from_o god●_n the_o apostles●_n the_o holy_a father_n and_o general_a counsel_n and_o which_o be_v approve_v and_o confirm_v by_o pope_n that_o by_o this_o order_n all_o the_o monastery_n religious_a place_n abbat_n abbess_n monk_n and_o nun_n and_o all_o other_o religious_a and_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v immediate_o subject_a to_o the_o government_n and_o guidance_n of_o bishop_n within_o their_o city_n and_o diocese_n of_o as_o unto_o their_o superiours●_n the_o apostle_n successor_n and_o such_o as_o have_v power_n and_o authority_n over_o they_o which_o maxim_n he_o prove_v by_o a_o great_a number_n of_o authority_n take_v out_o of_o ancient_a father_n counsel_n and_o the_o canon_n law_n part_v whereof_o we_o have_v set_v down_o in_o the_o margin_n from_o whence_o and_o upon_o divers_a other_o reason_n o●ed_v he_o conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n ought_v not_o for_o the_o future_a to_o grant_v any_o such_o exemption_n and_o that_o those_o which_o be_v grant_v already_o aught_o to_o be_v call_v in_o 5_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n make_v a_o grievous_a complaint_n hereof_o 24._o set_v out_o the_o injustice_n of_o they_o to_o the_o life_n the_o pope_n say_v he_o absolve_v all_o the_o prelate_n and_o superior_a order_n from_o the_o power_n care_n and_o correction_n of_o their_o superior_n as_o archbishop_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o their_o patriarch_n bishop_n from_o the_o archbishop_n chapter_n or_o college_n of_o clergy_n man_n from_o their_o bishop_n as_o also_o abbat_n and_o priour_o of_o monk_n and_o now_o of_o late_a i_o wish_v it_o be_v without_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o mischief_n the_o religious_a call_v of_o the_o order_n of_o poverty_n put_v they_o all_o by_o a_o kind_n of_o subversion_n of_o all_o order_n under_o his_o immediate_a care_n and_o correction_n without_o any_o evident_a necessity_n but_o rather_o upon_o a_o notorious_a greediness_n of_o increase_a suit_n beat_v his_o brain_n to_o make_v the_o fee_n run_v to_o he_o ward_n to_o spoil_v the_o prelate_n and_o enslave_v they_o unto_o he_o so_o much_o the_o more_o no_o man_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o insolence_n which_o proceed_v from_o hence_o for_o these_o exempt_v person_n have_v not_o their_o superior_n at_o hand_n grow_v contumacious_a disobedient_a and_o irreverent_a towards_o those_o to_o who_o they_o ought_v of_o right_a to_o be_v subject_a take_v from_o hence_o matter_n and_o occasion_n of_o offend_v more_o free_o both_o against_o they_o and_o other_o 6_o nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangiis_n touch_v also_o upon_o this_o abuse_n 31._o for_o speak_v of_o canon_n he_o say_v to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v free_o and_o with_o impunity_n commit_v all_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n which_o a_o soul_n be_v capable_a of_o they_o be_v exempt_v from_o all_o the_o correction_n and_o discipline_n of_o their_o prelate_n by_o pay_v a_o great_a ransom_n he_o make_v a_o particular_a enumeration_n of_o their_o vice_n and_o crime_n and_o afterward_o add_v have_v commit_v all_o these_o fraud_n and_o rapine_n there_o be_v no_o body_n to_o punish_v they_o for_o the_o poor_a can_v have_v no_o access_n to_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o sole_a judge_n which_o many_o of_o they_o brag_v to_o have_v 7_o mr._n john_n gerson_n in_o a_o certain_a book_n of_o he_o where_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n 70._o consider_v say_v he_o whether_o the_o too_o large_a exemption_n and_o privilege_n of_o some_o man_n be_v profitable_a or_o no_o and_o whether_o the_o avoidance_n of_o the_o correction_n of_o the_o ordinary_n grant_v unto_o they_o be_v commodious_a the_o emperor_n have_v also_o give_v his_o ambassador_n in_o charge_n to_o require_v at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o reduction_n of_o monastery_n under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n where_o they_o stand_v the_o king_n of_o france_n his_o ambassador_n stand_v to_o their_o demand_n as_o we_o have_v say_v elsewhere_o 8_o let_v we_o now_o see_v the_o goodly_a reformation_n herein_o make_v by_o the_o council_n for_o that_o piece_n which_o we_o have_v view_v already_o promise_v some_o goodness_n for_o the_o future_a first_o there_o be_v no_o forbiddance_n nor_o prohibition_n of_o such_o exemption_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o any_o restriction_n or_o limitation_n 8._o save_v only_o forasmuch_o as_o concern_v protonotary_n acolyte_n count_n palatine_n king_n chaplain_n and_o other_o such_o like_a dignity_n which_o challenge_v a_o kind_n of_o exemption_n which_o say_v our_o council_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v grant_v save_v upon_o just_a important_a and_o almost_o necessary_a cause_n as_o for_o other_o exempt_v person_n let_v the_o pope_n make_v as_o many_o as_o he_o will_v no_o body_n say_v a_o word_n to_o he_o but_o they_o have_v do_v a_o great_a courtesy_n when_o they_o declare_v that_o nothing_o be_v take_v from_o the_o ordinary_n by_o such_o privilege_n of_o exemption_n inasmuch_o say_v they_o as_o they_o shall_v always_o have_v the_o cognizance_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o exempt_v person●_n as_o delegate_n for_o the_o see_v apostolic_a pope_n according_a to_o they_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o have_v a_o proper_a jurisdiction_n and_o of_o a_o man_n own_o head_n and_o have_v it_o by_o commission_n 9_o the_o interest_n of_o our_o france_n concern_v this_o point_n be_v very_o evident_a in_o two_o thing_n first_o in_o the_o grant_n of_o exemption_n in_o as_o much_o as_o from_o all_o antiquity_n they_o be_v not_o grant_v save_v only_o by_o our_o king_n and_o prince_n or_o by_o the_o pope_n at_o their_o instance_n and_o upon_o very_o weighty_a and_o important_a consideration_n next_o for_o as_o much_o as_o no_o monastery_n church_n college_n or_o other_o ecclesiastical_a body_n can_v be_v exempt_v from_o their_o ordinary_n so_o as_o to_o say_v they_o depend_v immediate_o upon_o the_o holy_a see_v without_o the_o king_n leave_n and_o permission_n these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o one_o article_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n they_o derogate_v from_o this_o right_n by_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o twenty_o four_o session_n of_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v already_o 3._o and_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o six_o session_n which_o give_v prelate_n power_n to_o visit_v punish_v and_o correct_v all_o exempt_v clerk_n secular_a or_o regular_a so_o journ_v out_o of_o the_o monastery_n as_o delegate_n for_o the_o see_v apostolic_a 10_o and_o to_o show_v that_o this_o abuse_n of_o the_o pope_n do_v still_o remain_v we_o will_v give_v one_o instance_n as_o good_a as_o all_o every_o man_n know_v how_o the_o jesuit_n increase_v both_o in_o number_n of_o man_n and_o college_n and_o revenue_n it_o be_v a_o wonderful_a thing_n to_o hear_v what_o relation_n go_v of_o they_o yea_o to_o see_v as_o much_o as_o we_o see_v of_o they_o at_o this_o present_a that_o a_o little_a poverty_n shall_v beget_v so_o much_o riches_n that_o ten_o man_n in_o such_o a_o short_a time_n shall_v have_v breed_v as_o many_o of_o they_o already_o as_o there_o be_v savage_n in_o the_o new-found_a land_n now_o all_o these_o be_v exempt_a from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o all_o judge_n both_o ecclesiastic_a and_o secular_a and_o a_o suit_n can_v be_v commence_v against_o they_o but_o only_o before_o the_o pope_n in_o person_n if_o any_o man_n will_v plead_v with_o they_o he_o must_v resolve_v to_o go_v to_o rome_n for_o hark_v what_o their_o new_a bull_n say_v which_o they_o get_v from_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o in_o the_o year_n 1584._o to_o be_v immediate_o subject_a to_o this_o see_v and_o total_o exempt_v from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o all_o ordinary_n and_o delegate_n and_o all_o other_o judge_n as_o we_o also_o by_o virtue_n of_o these_o present_n exempt_v they_o from_o they_o that_o this_o be_v a_o new_a privilege_n may_v be_v collect_v from_o the_o bull_n of_o julius_n the_o three_o 21._o of_o the_o year_n 1550_o where_o after_o he_o have_v reckon_v up_o their_o privilege_n he_o add_v we_o ordain_v and_o declare_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v remain_v firm_a and_o stable_a for_o ever_o and_o shall_v be_v inviolable_o observe_v and_o keep_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o judge_v expound_v and_o decide_v by_o all_o judge_n and_o commissary_n by_o what_o authority_n soever_o establish_v deprive_v all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o of_o any_o power_n of_o judge_v and_o expound_v they_o otherwise_o so_o that_o other_o
emperor_n very_o advantageous_a to_o himself_o without_o forget_v any_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o papal_a pretension_n leave_v he_o nevertheless_o the_o guidance_n and_o government_n of_o temporal_a thing_n for_o his_o share_n 96._o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o truth_n say_v he_o neither_o the_o emperor_n invade_v the_o right_n of_o the_o popedom_n nor_o the_o pope_n the_o name_n of_o the_o emperor_n forasmuch_o as_o jesus_n christ_n have_v so_o distinguish_v the_o function_n and_o office_n of_o either_o power_n by_o their_o proper_a act_n and_o several_a dignity_n that_o christian_a emperor_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o pope_n for_o their_o eternal_a life_n and_o pope_n make_v use_v of_o the_o imperial_a law_n yet_o only_o in_o the_o course_n of_o temporal_a thing_n this_o epistle_n be_v canonize_v in_o two_o place_n of_o gratian'ss_n decree_n 4_o so_o it_o be_v a_o clear_a case_n that_o clergy_n man_n be_v ancient_o very_o poor_a that_o they_o live_v in_o common_a even_o at_o rome_n for_o a_o long_a time_n that_o they_o get_v their_o mean_n and_o revenue_n by_o the_o bounty_n and_o liberality_n of_o secular_a prince_n the_o ancient_a history_n yea_o even_o their_o own_o book_n do_v witness_n as_o much_o 1116._o when_o the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n and_o that_o of_o lewes_n the_o gentle_a shall_v be_v prove_v true_a they_o will_v furnish_v we_o with_o a_o strong_a argument_n to_o convince_v the_o pope_n that_o this_o be_v the_o hand_n from_o whence_o they_o receive_v their_o mean_n and_o therefore_o these_o be_v the_o author_n to_o who_o they_o shall_v acknowledge_v themselves_o behold_v and_o not_o ingrateful_o say_v as_o they_o do_v that_o such_o mean_n belong_v to_o they_o that_o the_o emperor_n ●surped_v they_o and_o do_v no_o more_o but_o restore_v they_o 5_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n have_v do_v thus_o much_o respect_n and_o honour_n unto_o prince_n as_o to_o entreat_v they_o to_o remove_v the_o abuse_n and_o correct_v mischief_n for_o as_o much_o as_o depend_v upon_o they_o and_o as_o concern_v their_o power_n without_o proceed_v to_o punishment_n and_o correction_n without_o undertake_v to_o ordain_v any_o thing_n in_o that_o kind_n themselves_o by_o thrust_v their_o sickle_n into_o another_o man_n harvest_n as_o this_o of_o trent_n do_v 6_o the_o three_o council_n of_o toledo_n 68_o hold_v in_o the_o year_n 589_o entreat_v reccave_v king_n of_o spain_n to_o prohibit_v the_o usurpation_n of_o his_o judge_n and_o officer_n which_o trouble_v the_o bishop_n servant_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a person_n by_o divers_a imposition_n the_o four_o of_o toledo_n hold_v in_o the_o year_n 643_o under_o king_n sisenand_n do_v indeed_o admonish_v those_o which_o have_v any_o controversy_n with_o potent_a man_n prince_n and_o other_o which_o invade_v their_o right_n to_o come_v and_o make_v their_o complaint_n to_o the_o council_n but_o this_o be_v to_o the_o end_n that_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o wrong_n do_v they_o be_v understand_v a_o course_n may_v be_v take_v for_o it_o by_o the_o officer_n royal_a as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o express_a term_n council_n 7_o the_o council_n of_o soissons_fw-fr have_v make_v certain_a ecclesiastical_a law_n wherein_o they_o speak_v of_o lay_v man_n too_o conclude_v with_o this_o clause_n if_o any_o man_n chance_n to_o transgress_v this_o decree_n and_o to_o break_v or_o contemn_v the_o law_n which_o three_o and_o twenty_o bishop_n with_o other_o ecclesiastiques_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v enact_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o prince_n pepin_n or_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o peer_n of_o france_n let_v he_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o same_o prince_n or_o let_v he_o compound_v the_o matter_n with_o the_o bishop_n o●_n judge_n so_o as_o be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o same_o law_n every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o order_n 836._o the_o council_n of_o mentz_n hold_v in_o the_o year_n 834_o exhort_v lewes_n the_o gentle_a to_o restrain_v the_o oppression_n of_o poor_a people_n but_o free_a bear_v which_o be_v inflict_v upon_o they_o by_o great_a and_o potent_a man_n contrary_a to_o all_o justice_n our_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o all_o these_o case_n have_v proceed_v by_o censure_n and_o excommunication_n by_o confiscation_n of_o good_n and_o deprivation_n of_o empire_n and_o kingdom_n 8_o now_o counsel_n be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v any_o thing_n concern_v the_o temporal_n which_o belong_v to_o lay_v man_n as_o they_o can_v so_o much_o as_o make_v law_n for_o the_o temporal_n of_o the_o church_n the_o reason_n be_v manifest_a which_o be_v because_o that_o clergy_n man_n get_v their_o possession_n by_o the_o bounty_n of_o prince_n at_o least_o for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o before_o they_o have_v they_o they_o be_v under_o their_o dominion_n and_o empire_n that_o for_o all_o this_o change_n of_o their_o master_n they_o do_v not_o lose_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o they_o christian_n religion_n say_v saint_n ambrose_n deprive_v no_o man_n of_o his_o right_n saint_n bernard_n pap._n who_o be_v quote_v and_o commend_v by_o all_o man_n in_o this_o case_n speak_v to_o eugenius_n the_o three_o sai_z what_o do_v the_o holy_a apostle_n leave_v you_o such_o as_o i_o have_v i_o give_v you_o say_v he_o and_o what_o be_v that_o one_o thing_n i_o know_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o silver_n nor_o gold_n for_o he_o himself_o say_v silver_n nor_o gold_n have_v i_o none_o if_o you_o chance_v to_o have_v any_o use_v it_o not_o according_a to_o your_o appetite_n but_o for_o a_o time_n and_o a_o little_a after_o grant_v that_o you_o arrogate_v these_o thing_n unto_o yourself_o by_o some_o other_o title_n you_o can_v never_o do_v it_o by_o the_o apostolic_a right_a for_o he_o can_v not_o give_v what_o he_o never_o have_v what_o he_o have_v he_o give_v to_o wit_v the_o charge_n and_o care_n over_o church_n do_v he_o leave_v the_o dominion_n too_o hear_v himself_o speak_v not_o bear_v rule_n say_v he_o in_o the_o church_n but_o be_v bring_v under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o flock_n pro._n 9_o friar_n john_n of_o paris_n a_o doctor_n in_o divinity_n of_o the_o order_n of_o predicant_o who_o write_v about_o the_o year_n 1280_o in_o his_o tract_n of_o the_o royal_a and_o papal_a power_n i_o be_o of_o opinion_n say_v he_o that_o truth_n itself_o have_v make_v a_o medium_fw-la here_o namely_o that_o it_o be_v not_o utter_o impossible_a that_o clergy_n man_n have_v dominion_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o temporal_a matter_n but_o yet_o it_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o profession_n and_o as_o christ_n vicar_n and_o the_o apostle_n successor_n but_o be_v convenient_a for_o they_o to_o have_v it_o by_o the_o grant_n and_o permission_n of_o prince_n if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v bestow_v it_o upon_o they_o out_o of_o devotion_n or_o if_o they_o have_v get_v it_o by_o other_o mean_n and_o in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n he_o set_v down_o this_o conclusion_n 8._o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o see_v christ_n as_o man_n have_v no_o power_n nor_o jurisdiction_n in_o temporal_a matter_n the_o priest_n be_v what_o be_v will_n have_v not_o receive_v any_o power_n over_o they_o from_o christ_n in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v not_o give_v unto_o they_o what_o he_o have_v not_o in_o himself_o 2._o 10_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n which_o prince_n have_v over_o ecclesiastical_a good_n they_o may_v impose_v tax_n subsidy_n ten_o and_o other_o charge_n upon_o they_o marsilius_n de_fw-fr milan_n say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n will_v enjoy_v temporal_a matter_n immoderate_o and_o without_o too_o much_o right_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o law_n and_o edict_n of_o prince_n and_o humane_a legislator_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o example_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n howbeit_o for_o thing_n which_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o when_o they_o have_v they_o in_o their_o power_n they_o shall_v rather_o relinquish_v they_o than_o contest_v for_o they_o he_o add_v further_a the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n cl●●ks_v as_o also_o all_o the_o rest_n have_v but_o small_a regard_n to_o this_o if_o they_o find_v themselves_o grieve_v at_o any_o time_n by_o the_o roman_a emperor_n in_o t●nths_o and_o subsidy_n and_o other_o temporal_a charge_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o soldier_n then_o when_o necessity_n force_v they_o to_o it_o in_o stead_n of_o acknowledge_v the_o courtesy_n they_o have_v receive_v in_o these_o temporal_a matter_n which_o these_o prince_n of_o rome_n have_v liberal_o impart_v unto_o they_o puff_v up_o with_o pride_n and_o ignorance_n of_o their_o own_o condition_n more_o ingrateful_a than_o the_o most_o ingrateful_a that_o ever_o be_v out_o of_o a_o unbridled_a presumption_n they_o fall_v into_o horrible_a blasphemy_n and_o curse_n as_o well_o against_o the_o prince_n as_o against_o such_o
practise_v it_o towards_o one_o gervase_n 123._o and_o he_o set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o this_o ordinance_n in_o another_o epistle_n he_o give_v we_o to_o wit_n that_o our_o king_n have_v this_o privilege_n not_o only_o for_o other_o man_n but_o for_o themselves_o too_o 195._o king_n say_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v exasperate_v by_o we_o but_o in_o case_n they_o will_v not_o rest_v quiet_a for_o all_o our_o admonition_n they_o must_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o divine_a judgement_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o read_v in_o the_o capitularie_n royal_a conclude_v upon_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n if_o the_o royal_a power_n etc._n etc._n 11_o now_o this_o privilege_n that_o they_o can_v be_v excommunicate_v be_v no_o new_a thing_n clement_n the_o four_o in_o one_o of_o his_o decretal_n confirm_v this_o privildge_n grant_v to_o the_o king_n queen_n and_o their_o child_n that_o they_o can_v be_v excommunicate_a nor_o their_o land_n interdict_v ●o●●x●ommunic●ble_a which_o john_n andrea_n extend_v to_o the_o brethren_n of_o king_n so_o they_o be_v child_n of_o king_n too_o but_o not_o to_o such_o as_o be_v only_a brethren_n and_o no_o more_o for_o example_n if_o say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v no_o king_n son_n shall_v succeed_v in_o a_o kingdom_n where_o such_o a_o proviso_n be_v make_v as_o suppose_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n at_o this_o present_a the_o king_n brethren_n shall_v not_o enjoy_v this_o privilege_n but_o when_o according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a custom_n the_o elder_a succeed_v in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o have_v brethren_n by_o the_o father_n side_n they_o enjoy_v this_o privildge_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o be_v child_n of_o the_o same_o head_n this_o instance_v in_o france_n show_v that_o our_o king_n be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o have_v this_o privilege_n that_o they_o can_v be_v excommunicate_v nor_o interdict_a à_fw-la quocunque_fw-la as_o the_o decretal_a have_v it_o that_o be_v by_o any_o man_n whatsoever_o which_o may_v be_v understand_v as_o well_o of_o the_o pope_n himself_o as_o of_o other_o it_o be_v true_a the_o gloss_n except_v he_o as_o also_o his_o legate_n à_fw-fr latere_fw-la but_o that_o do_v not_o take_v place_n against_o our_o king_n who_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o great_a deserve_n and_o good_a deed_n to_o the_o church_n be_v exempt_a from_o all_o such_o thunderclap_n chap._n iu._n that_o the_o council_n use_v command_v term_n to_o king_n and_o emperor_n and_o make_v they_o executioner_n of_o the_o bishop_n decree_n of_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v ancient_o do_v unto_o they_o by_o clergy_n man_n 1_o our_o council_n be_v not_o content_a with_o clip_v the_o right_n authority_n and_o prerogative_n of_o king_n prince_n and_o other_o lord_n to_o enhanse_v that_o of_o rome_n but_o further_o it_o trample_v they_o under_o foot_n make_v they_o but_o officer_n and_o minister_n to_o bishop_n by_o command_v they_o to_o execute_v what_o these_o ordain_v the_o holy_a council_n say_v they_o do_v further_o exhort_v all_o king_n prince_n commonwealth_n and_o magistrate_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o holy_a obedience_n do_v command_v they_o to_o interpose_v their_o aid_n and_o authority_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o say_a bishop_n abbat_n general_n and_o other_o which_o have_v the_o charge_n and_o superintendence_n for_o the_o put_n of_o the_o say_a reformation_n in_o execution_n every_o time_n and_o as_o oft_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v thereunto_o require_v to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o may_v without_o any_o impediment_n put_v in_o execution_n the_o thing_n aforesaid_a to_o the_o glory_n of_o almighty_a god_n 2_o have_v there_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o bare_a exhortation_n it_o have_v be_v well_o enough_o but_o this_o command_n find_v somewhat_o harsh_a however_o it_o be_v mitigate_v with_o the_o sweet_a appearance_n of_o a_o holy_a obedience_n for_o it_o be_v well_o know_v in_o what_o fashion_n they_o serve_v themselves_o of_o these_o fair_a word_n this_o mandamu●_fw-la be_v extraordinary_a and_o be_v never_o vent_v but_o from_o the_o stomach_n of_o ambitious_a pope_n or_o their_o conventicle_n let_v a_o man_n but_o read_v the_o act_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n general_n or_o provincial_n he_o shall_v find_v nothing_o but_o humble_a petition_n sweet_a exhortation_n prayer_n and_o blessing_n for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n command_n to_o they_o be_v not_o hear_v of_o then_o they_o be_v the_o man_n who_o alone_o have_v the_o fountain_n and_o arsenal_n in_o their_o own_o hand_n both_o for_o thing_n temporal_a and_o spiritual_a council_n who_o impart_v they_o to_o who_o they_o think_v good_a ecclesiastiques_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v but_o by_o way_n of_o petition_n they_o have_v neither_o command_n nor_o empire_n unless_o they_o cozen_v the_o monarch_n of_o the_o earth_n of_o it_o they_o be_v physician_n of_o soul_n subject_a to_o secular_a power_n have_v no_o weapon_n at_o all_o but_o censure_n and_o anathema_n against_o such_o as_o be_v perverse_a and_o irregular_a this_o mandamus_fw-la therefore_o be_v injust_a both_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o which_o give_v it_o and_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v so_o it_o be_v too_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o reason_n for_o which_o it_o be_v make_v in_o as_o much_o as_o by_o virtue_n hereof_o prince_n and_o monarch_n must_v be_v bind_v to_o obey_v the_o clergy_n of_o their_o empire_n and_o kingdom_n and_o that_o even_o to_o the_o mean_a of_o they_o they_o must_v be_v bind_v to_o assist_v they_o with_o a_o strong_a hand_n to_o put_v their_o ordinance_n in_o execution_n every_o time_n and_o as_o oft_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v require_v thereunto_o and_o in_o case_n they_o fail_v herein_o there_o will_v not_o want_v thunderbolt_n to_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o empire_n and_o dominion_n 3_o in_o another_o decree_n they_o sharp_o rebuke_v such_o bishop_n as_o debase_v themselves_o too_o much_o to_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o give_v place_n and_o submit_v to_o they_o in_o point_n of_o honour_n it_o be_v true_a they_o speak_v at_o first_o of_o petty_a king_n and_o other_o lord_n but_o the_o end_n of_o the_o decree_n relate_v also_o to_o such_o as_o be_v of_o great_a rank_n where_o it_o be_v say_v by_o way_n of_o command_n to_o bishop_n 17_o that_o as_o well_o within_o the_o church_n as_o without_o have_v before_o their_o eye_n their_o place_n and_o order_n they_o shall_v ever_o remember_v that_o they_o be_v father_n and_o pastor_n and_o as_o for_o prince_n and_o all_o other_o that_o they_o do_v fatherly_a honour_n and_o due_a reverence_n to_o they_o 4_o in_o the_o same_o decree_n they_o renew_v and_o confirm_v all_o the_o former_a decree_n and_o decretal_n which_o speak_v of_o the_o honour_n of_o bishop_n and_o put_v they_o in_o course_n which_o be_v note_v in_o the_o margin_n by_o the_o pope_n expositor_n and_o among_o other_o the_o epistle_n of_o innocent_a the_o three_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n obedient_a who_o some_o think_v to_o be_v baldwin_n or_o his_o brother_n henry_n who_o be_v frenchmen_n towards_o the_o end_n whereof_o it_o be_v say_v if_o the_o imperial_a greatness_n will_v wise_o consider_v these_o thing_n it_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o be_v in_o truth_n a_o great_a and_o honourable_a member_n of_o the_o church_n to_o sit_v over_o against_o his_o footstool_n and_o upon_o the_o left_a hand_n consider_v that_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n do_v with_o reverence_n stand_v up_o as_o they_o shall_v do_v before_o their_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n and_o allow_v they_o a_o venerable_a place_n next_o after_o themselves_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o in_o his_o new_a purgation_n of_o the_o decretall_n have_v put_v this_o note_n upon_o it_o see_v here_o say_v he_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o the_o twenty_o five_o session_n and_o seventeen_o chapter_n of_o reformation_n but_o let_v we_o here_o add_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o place_n in_o the_o margin_n that_o we_o may_v better_o know_v what_o honour_n this_o council_n will_v have_v king_n and_o prince_n do_v to_o bishop_n 5_o the_o canon_n valentinianus_n contain_v the_o resolution_n which_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n make_v concern_v the_o election_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n and_o the_o exhortation_n which_o he_o make_v to_o the_o bishop_n than_o present_v when_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v proceed_n to_o the_o election_n set_v such_o a_o one_o say_v he_o in_o the_o pontifical_a see_v as_o we_o that_o govern_v the_o empire_n may_v sincere_o put_v our_o head_n under_o his_o hand_n and_o receive_v his_o admonition_n inasmuch_o as_o we_o shall_v offend_v as_o man_n like_o medicine_n from_o a_o necessary_a physician_n see_v here_o word_n that_o beseem_v a_o christian_a emperor_n indeed_o who_o give_v clergy_n man_n that_o reverence_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o as_o
physician_n of_o soul_n but_o the_o glossatour_n conform_v himself_o to_o the_o ambition_n of_o rome_n refer_v all_o this_o to_o worldly_a honour_n and_o vanity_n set_a here_o a_o argument_n say_v he_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v inferior_a to_o a_o bishop_n and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o a_o bishop_n it_o be_v true_a that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o seem_v to_o favour_v the_o emperor_n by_o give_v he_o a_o office_n in_o the_o church_n and_o make_v he_o archdeacon_n for_o expound_v the_o word_n ordinem_fw-la he_o say_v from_o this_o word_n some_o have_v affirm_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v have_v the_o order_n of_o subdeacon_n in_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v not_o true_a because_o he_o have_v a_o military_a character_n yet_o howsoever_o he_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o subdeacon_n when_o he_o serve_v the_o bishop_n o_o brave_o thrust_v ●_z 6_o gregory_n the_o seventh●_n in_o a_o epistle_n which_o he_o send_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n speak_v yet_o in_o a_o more_o lofty_a style_n for_o point_n of_o honour_n who_o make_v question_n say_v he_o but_o the_o priest_n of_o christ_n be_v repute_v for_o the_o father_n and_o master_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a 96._o be_v it_o not_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o miserable_a madness_n if_o the_o son_n shall_v go_v about_o to_o domineer_v over_o his_o father_n or_o the_o scholar_n over_o his_o master_n and_o by_o some_o unlawful_a obligation_n to_o bring_v he_o under_o his_o power_n by_o who_o he_o may_v be_v bind_v and_o unbound_v not_o only_o upon_o earth_n but_o in_o heaven_n also_o the_o gloss_n make_v a_o exception_n yet_o if_o the_o father_n shall_v grow_v frantic_a the_o son_n shall_v be_v make_v tutor_n over_o he_o to_o govern_v he_o he_o that_o shall_v read_v cardinal_n benno_n upon_o the_o life_n of_o this_o pope_n and_o other_o that_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o he_o will_v find_v that_o this_o be_v not_o much_o beside_o the_o cushion_n 7_o pope_n john_n the_o eight_o say_v that_o it_o be_v god_n will_n the_o disposal_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v belong_v to_o the_o clergy_n 96._o and_o not_o to_o secular_a prince_n who_o if_o they_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a his_o will_n be_v they_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o clergy_n he_o add_v yet_o further_o that_o christian_a emperor_n ought_v to_o submit_v their_o execution_n to_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n and_o not_o to_o prefer_v they_o pope_n gelasius_n write_v to_o the_o oriental_a bishop_n that_o christian_a prince_n be_v wont_a to_o obey_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o prefer_v their_o own_o power_n to_o submit_v their_o own_o head_n to_o bishop_n not_o sit_v as_o judge_n of_o they_o these_o be_v the_o gloss_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n upon_o the_o forecited_a decree_n all_o take_v out_o of_o gratian'ss_n decree_n all_o hammer_a out_o and_o whet_v in_o the_o pope_n forge_n 8_o they_o forget_v that_o decretal_a of_o clement_n the_o three_o 423._o saint_n peter_n command_v say_v he_o that_o all_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o other_o man_n beside_o shall_v obey_v bishop_n the_o glossatour_n infer_v ergo_fw-la the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v inferior_a to_o bishop_n which_o be_v true_a but_o if_o the_o king_n have_v many_o bishopriques_n within_o his_o realm_n before_o which_o of_o they_o shall_v he_o treat_v of_o his_o spiritual_a case_n he_o shall_v treat_v of_o they_o before_o that_o bishop_n in_o who_o territory_n he_o make_v his_o principal_a residence_n which_o gloss_n be_v approve_v and_o follow_v by_o the_o canonist_n that_o comment_v upon_o that_o place_n and_o we_o need_v not_o wonder_v if_o they_o will_v have_v the_o king_n to_o repair_v to_o the_o bishop_n to_o treat_v of_o spiritual_a matter_n for_o there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o that_o leave_v it_o in_o writing_n that_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v out_o of_o the_o fief_n or_o manor_n which_o they_o hold_v they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o call_v king_n by_o their_o name_n nor_o to_o acknowledge_v they_o for_o king_n not_o so_o much_o as_o for_o the_o good_n temporal_a of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o pope_n that_o pronounce_v this_o sentence_n by_o name_n innocent_n the_o three_o 9_o we_o forget_v to_o tell_v how_o our_o canonist_n be_v enter_v upon_o a_o profound_a piece_n of_o philosopie_n to_o know_v exact_o how_o much_o the_o sun_n be_v big_a than_o the_o moon_n for_o without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o point_n they_o can_v resolve_v how_o much_o the_o papal_a dignity_n surpass_v the_o imperial_a inasmuch_o as_o this_o be_v the_o ell_n with_o which_o they_o must_v be_v measure_v the_o pope_n be_v by_o innocent_a the_o three_o compare_v to_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o moon_n the_o gloss_n upon_o that_o chapter_n determine_v the_o case_n thus_o wherefore_o see_v the_o earth_n be_v seven_o time_n big_a than_o the_o moon_n and_o the_o sun_n eight_o time_n big_a than_o the_o earth_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o papal_a dignity_n be_v forty_o seven_o time_n big_a than_o the_o royal_a john_n andrea_n observe_v there_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o this_o gloss_n in_o other_o copy_n say_v he_o it_o be_v ten_o time_n four_o in_o others●_n forty_o time_n but_o neither_o this_o nor_o that_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o supputation_n of_o the_o gloss_n for_o if_o the_o earth_n be_v seven_o time_n great_a than_o the_o moon_n and_o the_o sun_n eight_o time_n great_a than_o the_o earth_n the_o sun_n must_v then_o be_v eight_o time_n seven_o time_n great_a than_o the_o moon_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v fifty_o six_o time_n great_a for_o eight_o time_n seven_o make_v fifty_o six_o pope_n gregory_n in_o his_o censure_n upon_o this_o place_n takes_z notice_n of_o this_o diversity_n of_o read_v which_o be_v more_o to_o his_o own_o advantage_n in_o other_o copy_n say_v he_o it_o be_v fifty_o time_n seven_o time_n pope_n but_o for_o the_o quantity_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n and_o earth_n and_o how_o much_o great_a one_o of_o they_o be_v than_o another_o see_v ptolemy_n in_o hi●_n five_o book_n and_o six_o chapter_n it_o be_v requisite_a to_o observe_v that_o for_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o pope_n greatness_n be_v ten_o time_n great_a but_o see_v here_o another_o addition_n yet_o which_o help_v well_o to_o augment_v the_o score_n here_o laurence_n say_v the_o addition_n cite_v the_o say_n of_o ptolemy_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o sun_n contain_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o earth_n one_o hundred_o forty_o seven_o time_n and_o two_o half_a part_n more_o it_o be_v also_o well_o know_v to_o every_o body_n that_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o sun_n contain_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o moon_n seven_o thousand_o seven_o hundred_o forty_o four_o time_n and_o one_o half_n more_o see_v here_o how_o they_o write_v of_o this_o point_n it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v they_o will_v never_o disentangle_v themselves_o out_o of_o these_o doubt_n but_o by_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o council_n and_o further_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a that_o they_o employ_v some_o surveyou●_n in_o the_o business_n and_o if_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o sun_n shall_v happen_v to_o decrease_v or_o the_o moon_n to_o increase_v there_o will_v be_v a_o great_a many_o amaze_v with_o it_o 10_o though_o this_o be_v but_o a_o sport_n yet_o no_o man_n of_o judgement_n but_o will_v be_v more_o ready_a to_o weep_v than_o to_o laugh_v at_o it_o for_o this_o vanity_n have_v make_v man_n renounce_v the_o simplicity_n of_o christianity_n to_o run_v after_o the_o world_n and_o glut_v themselves_o with_o vanity_n this_o ecclesiastical_a ambition_n begin_v to_o grow_v up_o as_o high_a as_o origens_n time_n we_o be_v in_o such_o a_o take_v say_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o prelate_n of_o his_o time_n that_o we_o seem_v to_o outvie_v the_o pride_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n either_o because_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v or_o do_v not_o respect_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n and_o after_o the_o fashion_n of_o king_n we_o desire_v to_o have_v weapon_n of_o terror_n to_o march_v before_o we_o saint_n chrysostome_n say_v likewise_o that_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n be_v for_o rule_v over_o such_o as_o be_v inferior_a to_o they_o for_o bring_v they_o into_o subjection_n and_o spoil_v they_o when_o they_o deserve_v it_o and_o for_o serve_v their_o turn_n of_o they_o to_o their_o commodity_n and_o for_o their_o honour_n even_o to_o death_n but_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n be_v ordain_v to_o serve_v such_o as_o be_v inferior_a to_o they_o and_o to_o minister_v unto_o they_o all_o that_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o then_o either_o just_a
lewes_n the_o eleven_o touch_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n have_v insert_v this_o article_n item_n it_o belong_v to_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n the_o king_n who_o be_v the_o principal_a founder_n guardian_n protector_n and_o defendor_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o this_o church_n when_o she_o suffer_v in_o her_o liberty_n to_o assemble_v and_o call_v together_o the_o prelate_n and_o other_o clergyman_n as_o well_o within_o this_o realm_n as_o of_o dauphiny_a and_o in_o the_o same_o assembly_n and_o congregation_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n so_o call_v together_o there_o to_o preside_v and_o provide_v a_o remedy_n against_o such_o attempt_n as_o may_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o say_a liberty_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v hereafter_o 5_o the_o three_o estate_n assemble_v at_o tours_n the_o year_n 1483_o in_o their_o remonstrance_n present_v to_o the_o same_o king_n lewes_n the_o eleven_o say_v thus_o that_o the_o king_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o crown_n as_o well_o of_o common_a right_n as_o by_o the_o consultation_n and_o request_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o dauphinie_n be_v as_o the_o former_a king_n his_o predecessor_n be_v the_o protector_n and_o defendor_n of_o the_o holy_a decree_n liberty_n and_o franchise_n of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o dauphinie_n 9_o according_a hereunto_o every_o time_n and_o as_o often_o as_o there_o have_v be_v any_o trouble_n or_o disorder_n in_o the_o church_n or_o when_o any_o question_n be_v about_o proceed_v to_o some_o great_a reformation_n the_o emperor_n and_o king_n have_v put_v their_o hand_n unto_o it_o and_o have_v apply_v the_o remedy_n either_o upon_o their_o own_o mere_a motion_n or_o at_o the_o request_n of_o other_o which_o be_v verify_v by_o the_o example_n of_o king_n hezekias_n who_o in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n in_o the_o first_o month_n 15._o open_v the_o door_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o repair_v they_o and_o he_o bring_v in_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o levite_n and_o command_v they_o to_o sanctify_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o carry_v forth_o the_o filthiness_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a place_n and_o the_o levite_n rise_v and_o they_o gather_v their_o brethren_n and_o come_v according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o king_n by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o cleanse_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o same_o hezekiah_n cast_v out_o idolatry_n which_o by_o little_a and_o little_o have_v creep_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n he_o remove_v the_o high_a place_v and_o break_v the_o image_n and_o cut_v down_o the_o grove_n and_o break_v in_o piece_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n that_o moses_n have_v make_v 18.4_o for_o until_o those_o day_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v burn_v incense_n to_o it_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n be_v find_v after_o it_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n lose_v king_n josias_n command_v hilkiah_n the_o high_a priest_n allow_v and_o some_o other_o to_o go_v to_o huldah_n the_o prophetess_n to_o inquire_v concern_v this_o book_n have_v hear_v their_o report_n after_o their_o return_n he_o go_v up_o into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n 2●●●_n and_o all_o the_o man_n of_o judah_n and_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n with_o he_o and_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o all_o the_o people_n both_o small_a and_o great_a and_o he_o read_v in_o their_o ear_n all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o make_v a_o covenant_n before_o the_o lord_n to_o walk_v after_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o his_o testimony_n and_o his_o statute_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o he_o command_v hilkiah_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o second_o order_n and_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o door_n to_o bring_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o vessel_n that_o be_v make_v for_o baal_n and_o he_o put_v down_o the_o idolatrous_a priest_n who_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n have_v ordain_v to_o burn_v incense_n and_o destroy_v their_o altar_n and_o do_v other_o such_o like_a thing_n concern_v the_o order_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n 7_o let_v we_o prove_v this_o further_a by_o the_o example_n and_o testimony_n of_o pope_n the_o four_o council_n say_v zonara_n be_v call_v by_o reason_n of_o th●_n instance_n which_o be_v make_v by_o leo_n pope_n of_o rome_n and_o anatolius_n patriarch_n of_o new_a rome_n 38._o to_o the_o emperor_n martian_a that_o the_o opinion_n of_o dios●oru●●●t●ia●ch_n ●●t●ia●ch_z of_o alexandria_n and_o eu●ych●s_n may_v not_o remain_v unexamined_a and_o that_o the_o crime_n commit_v against_o st._n flavian_n may_v not_o be_v slur_v over_o under_o hand_n pope_n boniface_n the_o first_o entreat_v the_o emperor_n honorius_n in_o his_o letter_n isidori_n to_o take_v order_n that_o they_o do_v not_o proceed_v to_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o corruption_n which_o give_v he_o occasion_n to_o make_v a_o decree_n thereupon_o we_o have_v relate_v the_o passage_n of_o it_o in_o another_o place_n 8_o pope_n gregory_n the_o first_o write_v to_o aldebert_n king_n of_o england_n in_o these_o term_n most_o glorious_a son_n 60._o be_v diligent_a to_o preserve_v that_o grace_n you_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n make_v haste_n to_o extend_v the_o christian_a faith_n over_o all_o people_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o you_o multiply_v the_o zeal_n of_o your_o uprightness_n by_o their_o conversion_n take_v away_o the_o service_n of_o idol_n pull_v down_o the_o e●ifices_n of_o their_o temple_n exhort_v thereunto_o the_o mind_n of_o your_o subject_n in_o great_a uprightness_n and_o purity_n of_o life_n edify_v they_o by_o fright_v by_o flattering_n by_o correct_v they_o that_o so_o you_o may_v be_v reward_v in_o heaven_n by_o he_o who_o name_n and_o knowledge_n you_o shall_v have_v to_o dilate_a upon_o earth_n the_o same_o st._n gregory_n write_v to_o childebert_n king_n of_o france_n in_o this_o manner_n 53._o for_o as_o much_o as_o we_o have_v be_v inform_v of_o certain_a thing_n which_o do_v high_o offend_v almighty_a god_n and_o do_v great_o disgrace_v the_o honour_n and_o reverence_n of_o the_o priesthood_n we_o entreat_v you_o to_o take_v order_n that_o such_o thing_n may_v be_v mend_v by_o the_o censure_n of_o your_o power_n and_o to_o king_n theodebert_n thus_o 54_o this_o will_v be_v absolute_o profitable_a for_o your_o kingdom_n if_o that_o which_o be_v commit_v against_o god_n within_o your_o dominion_n be_v correct_v by_o such_o reformation_n as_o your_o excellence_n shall_v apply_v unto_o it_o 9_o the_o act_n of_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 876_o about_o the_o coronation_n of_o charles_n the_o second_o son_n to_o lewes_n the_o gentle_a 499._o contain_v a_o certain_a proposition_n make_v by_o pope_n john_n the_o eight_o where_o among_o other_o thing_n speak_v of_o charles_n the_o great_a he_o say_v of_o he_o that_o have_v raise_v all_o the_o church_n to_o a_o mighty_a greatness_n he_o have_v always_o this_o wish_n and_o desire_n of_o reform_v a●d_v restore_v the_o holy_a roman_a church_n to_o her_o first_o order_n and_o estate_n he_o add_v present_o after_o that_o he_o learn_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n out_o of_o holy_a writ●_n which_o he_o find_v to_o be_v unhusband_v and_o overgrow_v with_o the_o thorn_n of_o divers_a error_n and_o abuse_n that_o he_o trim_v it_o up_o with_o knowledge_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a purge_v it_o from_o error_n and_o furnish_v it_o with_o sure_a and_o certain_a doctrine_n 10_o john_n of_o paris_n 21._o a_o friar_n predicant_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 1280_o say_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o prince_n to_o repel_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o may_v proceed_v by_o the_o material_a sword_n especial_o when_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n turn_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n church_n the_o care_n whereof_o belong_v unto_o the_o king_n otherwise_o he_o shall_v bear_v the_o sword_n in_o vain_a 11_o claudius_n espenseus_n a_o doctor_n of_o the_o sorbon_n 10._o in_o a_o epistle_n of_o his_o print_a 1547_o where_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o prince_n teach_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o a_o prince_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n then_o especial_o when_o she_o be_v full_a of_o so_o great_a abuse_n error_n and_o heresy_n and_o upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n i_o will_v here_o add_v one_o thing_n say_v he_o for_o fear_v lest_o any_o body_n shall_v think_v that_o it_o concern_v prince_n only_o that_o profane_a thing_n succeed_v well_o and_o not_o sacred_a too_o as_o if_o they_o be_v only_a keeper_n of_o
service_n and_o that_o such_o priest_n as_o be_v ordain_v and_o establish_v in_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v tie_v and_o boun●_n to_o do_v any_o other_o service_n but_o ecclesiastical_a for_o and_o in_o consideration_n of_o the_o tithe_n and_o oblation_n of_o faithful_a people●_n house_n base_a ●_z or_o garden_n adjoin_v to_o the_o say_a church_n nor_o for_o the_o manor_n aforesaid_a 8._o a_o certain_a council_n hold_v at_o paris_n do_v commend_v and_o follow_v this_o same_o ordinance_n and_o our_o pope_n have_v canonize_v it_o 13_o the_o council_n of_o pavy_n hold_v under_o the_o emperor_n lewes_n the_o second_o in_o the_o year_n 855_o address_v these_o word_n unto_o he_o 894._o as_o for_o the_o reparation_n of_o church_n the_o chapter_n which_o be_v make_v by_o your_o predecessor_n be_v sufficient_a but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v observe_v it_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o your_o admonition_n so_o likewise_o forasmuch_o as_o concern_v place_n for_o the_o entertain_n of_o stranger_n that_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o capitularie_n ought_v to_o be_v observe_v 14_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n in_o one_o of_o his_o edict_n do_v excommunicate_v all_o heresies●_n and_o that_o of_o nestorius_n and_o eutyches_n in_o particular_a trinitate_fw-la we_o anathematise_v all_o heresy_n and_o especial_o that_o of_o eutyches_n and_o nestorius_n as_o also_o that_o of_o apollinaris_n he_o further_o ordain_v that_o if_o the_o follower_n of_o that_o sect_n do_v not_o return_v after_o the_o warning_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o they_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o edict_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o look_v for_o any_o favour_n or_o pardon_n command_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o condign_a punishment_n as_o convict_v and_o denounce_v heretic_n this_o edict_n be_v commend_v and_o approve_a bp_n epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o by_o a_o good_a number_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v then_o at_o constantinople_n as_o the_o same_o justinian_n affirm_v in_o one_o of_o his_o constitution_n direct_v to_o he_o where_o after_o he_o have_v rehearse_v the_o tenor_n of_o the_o say_a edict_n eccles._n these_o be_v the_o thing_n say_v he_o which_o by_o our_o divine_a edict_n we_o have_v condemn_v in_o the_o person_n of_o heretic_n to_o which_o all_o the_o most_o holy_a bishop_n and_o reverend_a abbat_n which_o be_v then_o present_a in_o this_o city_n have_v together_o with_o your_o holiness_n subscribe_v pope_n john_n in_o the_o answer_n which_o he_o make_v to_o the_o same_o emperor_n have_v such_o another_o confirmation_n we_o have_v be_v inform_v say_v he_o by_o the_o report_n of_o hypatius_n and_o demetrius_n that_o you_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o love_n of_o the_o faith_n for_o the_o abolish_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o heretic_n have_v set_v out_o a_o edict_n follow_v therein_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o our_o brethren_n and_o fellow-bishop_n which_o we_o by_o our_o authority_n do_v here_o confirm_v as_o conformable_a to_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n pope_n john_n successor_n will_v say_v now_o adays_o that_o it_o do_v not_o concern_v he_o to_o intermeddle_v so_o far_o in_o divine_a matter_n he_o go_v further_a yet_o for_o he_o pray_v justinian_n that_o he_o will_v mitigate_v this_o his_o edict_n towards_o such_o as_o will_v repent_v pope_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o church_n do_v not_o shut_v her_o bosom_n against_o those_o that_o return_n unto_o she_o i_o entreat_v your_o clemency_n say_v he_o that_o if_o they_o will_v return_v to_o the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n by_o forsake_v their_o error_n and_o cast_v off_o their_o bad_a intention_n that_o you_o will_v turn_v the_o edge_n and_o point_n of_o your_o indignation_n from_o they_o by_o receive_v they_o into_o your_o communion_n and_o admit_v they_o into_o your_o savour_n upon_o our_o intercession_n rhab●num_fw-la 15_o a_o certain_a council_n hold_v at_o tribur_n under_o king_n arnold_n which_o be_v extant_a in_o a_o book_n of_o rhabanus_fw-la have_v this_o preface_n in_o the_o 895_o year_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o lord●_n the_o glorious_a king_n arnold_n so_o journ_v at_o tribur_n there_o be_v twenty_o six_o bishop_n assemble_v and_o to_o the_o number_n of_o a_o hundred_o abbat_n of_o monastery_n who_o the_o same_o king_n command_v to_o treat_v of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o promise_v to_o show_v himself_o a_o most_o devout_a coadjutour_n for_o the_o reestablish_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o decree_n as_o also_o the_o constitution_n of_o his_o ancestor_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o their_o capitulary_a so_o far_o forth_o as_o he_o shall_v find_v they_o enfeeble_v he_o assist_v also_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o holy_a synod_n by_o his_o authority_n royal_a against_o some_o secular_a person_n who_o will_v have_v infringe_v the_o episcopal_a authority_n and_o those_o capitulary_a law_n which_o be_v hereafter_o set_v down_o be_v publish_v and_o approve_v by_o he_o 10._o 16_o as_o for_o the_o pope_n in_o former_a time_n they_o do_v not_o only_o not_o contradict_v this_o but_o rather_o become_v supplicant_n to_o emperor_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o such_o rule_n and_o ordinance_n say_v marsilius_n of_o milan_n and_o indeed_o leo_n the_o four_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n lotharius_n in_o this_o manner_n as_o for_o the_o capitulary_a ordinance_n and_o imperial_a constitution_n as_o well_o of_o yourself_o as_o of_o your_o predecessor_n we_o declare_v unto_o you_o that_o we_o will_v observe_v and_o keep_v they_o exact_o both_o at_o this_o present_a and_o for_o ever_o hereafter_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o we_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v able_a and_o if_o perchance_o any_o man_n either_o have_v or_o do_v inform_v you_o otherwise_o know_v for_o certain_a that_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n see_v here_o a_o fair_a promise_n which_o be_v canonize_v in_o the_o decret_a but_o it_o serve_v for_o nothing_o there_o but_o tapestry_n 53._o 17_o the_o emperor_n maurice_n set_v out_o a_o prohibition_n in_o one_o of_o his_o constitution_n that_o such_o as_o be_v bind_v to_o bear_v arm_n or_o to_o other_o public_a service_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o any_o ecclesiastical_a habit_n nor_o into_o any_o monasterry_n see_v by_o that_o mean_v they_o think_v to_o secure_v their_o affair_n gregory_n the_o great_a send_v this_o edict_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o sicily_n recommend_v the_o observance_n of_o it_o unto_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v by_o his_o successor_n who_o have_v canonize_v this_o epistle_n of_o he_o 18_o pope_n gelasius_n recommend_v the_o observance_n of_o law_n make_v by_o secular_a prince_n about_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n 54._o who_o dare_v say_v say_v he_o that_o the_o law_n of_o prince_n the_o rule_n of_o father_n or_o the_o new_a admonition_n may_v be_v slight_v and_o he_o afterward_o speak_v of_o two_o natural_a bear_v slave_n who_o have_v be_v make_v deacon_n in_o the_o church_n contrary_a to_o the_o say_a law_n one_o of_o the_o boniface_v write_v thus_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n 4_o if_o any_o doubt_n do_v arise_v about_o ecclesiastical_a law_n or_o any_o other_o matter_n betwixt_o any_o two_o bishop_n belong_v to_o the_o same_o council_n let_v the_o metropolitan_a in_o the_o first_o place_n judge_n of_o it_o at_o the_o council_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o if_o the_o party_n will_v not_o stand_v to_o that_o judgement_n then_o let_v the_o primate_n of_o the_o country_n have_v the_o hear_n of_o it_o and_o determine_v of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n and_o your_o own_o law_n and_o neither_o of_o the_o party_n shall_v have_v power_n to_o contradict_v it_o which_o be_v avow_v in_o like_a manner_n by_o his_o successor_n 19_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o handle_v many_o point_n which_o concern_v the_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n as_o the_o call_n of_o counsel_n the_o presidence_n and_o judgement_n in_o them●_n the_o authorise_a of_o they_o the_o election_n or_o nomination_n to_o bishopriques_n the_o jurisdiction_n over_o clergyman_n and_o other_o thing_n of_o like_a nature_n which_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o reinculcate_v here_o 517._o we_o will_v add_v for_o a_o close_a that_o famous_a passage_n of_o demetrius_n archbishop_n of_o bulgaria_n which_o contain_v a_o great_a part_n of_o all_o that_o go_v before_o and_o with_o which_o for_o that_o reason_n we_o will_v conclude_v he_o therefore_o in_o one_o of_o his_o response_n to_o constantine_n cabasilas_n archbishop_n of_o dyrrhachium_n say_v precedence_n the_o emperor_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o common_a know_a monarque_n of_o the_o church_n do_v preside_v in_o synodical_a determina●ions_n and_o make_v they_o be_v in_o force_n he_o prescribe_v ecclesiastical_a order_n he_o set_v law_n to_o the_o life_n and_o polity_n of_o such_o as_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n as_o also_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o ●ishops_n and_o clerk_n and_o to_o the_o suffrage_n of_o vacant_a
church_n he_o prefer_v from_o a_o lesser_a honour_n to_o a_o great_a as_o by_o erect_v a_o metropolitan_a church_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o bishoprique_n thereby_o adorn_v either_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o man_n or_o the_o place_n and_o that_o i_o may_v speak_v in_o a_o word_n save_v only_o the_o administer_a of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o emperor_n represent_v all_o the_o pontificial_a privilege_n when_o he_o proceed_v in_o a_o lawful_a and_o canonical_a way_n chap._n vii_o of_o other_o prejudices_fw-la concern_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o his_o kingdom_n in_o particular_a and_o first_o of_o precedence_n 1_o all_z the_o former_a discourse_n be_v interweave_v of_o the_o right_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o france_n ●_o and_o the_o gallicane_n church_n there_o remain_v yet_o some_o few_o which_o we_o can_v not_o convenient_o rank_n elsewhere_o whereof_o we_o shall_v speak_v in_o this_o place_n and_o show_v the_o prejudice_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o they_o by_o this_o council_n the_o first_o shall_v be_v about_o the_o precedence_n which_o belong_v unto_o our_o king_n before_o all_o other_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v deny_v unto_o they_o before_o he_o of_o spain_n and_o put_v in_o compromize_v not_o without_o a_o apparent_a blemish_n to_o their_o sacred_a majesty_n the_o council_n indeed_o do_v not_o judge_v for_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n but_o they_o declare_v 4●_n that_o they_o mean_v not_o that_o any_o prejudice_n shall_v accrue_v to_o such_o as_o have_v not_o take_v their_o place_n but_o inasmuch_o as_o they_o suffer_v that_o controversy_n without_o pass_v their_o sentence_n upon_o his_o side_n who_o have_v both_o the_o right_n and_o the_o possession_n and_o to_o who_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o much_o behold_v this_o be_v sufficient_a cause_n of_o complaint_n thus_o another_o man_n right_n be_v encroach_v upon_o by_o degree_n it_o be_v enough_o at_o the_o first_o that_o a_o doubt_n be_v make_v of_o it_o he_o may_v in_o time_n gain_v upon_o it_o see_v he_o be_v already_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o parity_n the_o libel_n which_o be_v put_v in_o concern_v the_o precedence_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n do_v sufficient_o show_v we_o what_o prejudice_n the_o toleration_n of_o a_o council_n have_v do_v unto_o our_o king_n but_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o we_o relate_v the_o whole_a story_n of_o what_o have_v ensue_v upon_o it_o 2_o the_o count_n de_fw-fr luna_n ambassador_n of_o king_n philip_n of_o spain_n when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o council_n the_o 21_o of_o may_v 1563_o see_v the_o ambassador_n of_o france_n have_v take_v their_o place_n immediate_o after_o the_o emperor_n go_v and_o ●ate_z down_o next_o to_o the_o secretary_n of_o the_o council_n make_v this_o protestation_n in_o spanish_a albeit_o the_o first_o place_n after_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n belong_v unto_o i_o as_o i_o be_o such_o a_o ambassador_n both_o in_o this_o place_n and_o company_n 8._o and_o every_o other_o which_o before_o all_o thing_n i_o do_v here_o declare_v and_o protest_v yet_o not_o to_o disturb_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v here_o handle_v nor_o give_v occasion_n to_o any_o man_n to_o retire_v i_o take_v that_o place_n which_o be_v assign_v unto_o i_o use_v it_o for_o the_o present_a and_o will_v use_v it_o so_o long_o as_o i_o shall_v think_v fit_a yet_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o i_o will_v have_v every_o man_n to_o know_v well_o which_o i_o do_v here_o declare_v and_o protest_v that_o this_o my_o modesty_n and_o the_o regard_n which_o i_o have_v to_o the_o wholesome_a consultation_n of_o this_o sacred_a assembly_n in_o general_a ambassador_n can_v be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o the_o dignity_n majesty_n and_o right_a of_o king_n philip_n my_o master_n nor_o his_o posterity_n and_o that_o this_o right_n shall_v be_v no_o less_o save_v and_o entire_a unto_o he_o for_o the_o present_a or_o upon_o other_o occasion_n which_o i_o will_v have_v reserve_v unto_o he_o both_o in_o these_o action_n and_o all_o other_o in_o all_o other_o place_n and_o at_o all_o other_o time_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o may_v always_o prosecute_v and_o maintain_v these_o right_n and_o this_o claim_n as_o well_o as_o if_o that_o place_n which_o belong_v unto_o i_o here_o and_o at_o this_o time_n as_o a_o ambassador_n of_o such_o quality_n have_v be_v grant_v unto_o i_o disclaim_v any_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v object_v by_o any_o man_n against_o this_o my_o asseveration_n and_o protestation_n so_o as_o it_o be_v no_o wrong_n unto_o they_o which_o protestation_n of_o i_o contain_v in_o this_o libel_n i_o desire_v the_o most_o holy_a father_n may_v be_v write_v and_o insert_v among_o the_o act_n of_o this_o most_o sacred_a synod_n and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_a to_o publish_v the_o act_n without_o it_o and_o a_o copy_n thereof_o to_o be_v give_v unto_o i_o sign_v by_o the_o secretary_n 285._o 3_o the_o french_a ambassador_n without_o be_v dismay_v at_o this_o rodomontado_n modest_o answer_v in_o these_o term_n if_o we_o shall_v have_v sit_v to_o day_n in_o this_o council_n in_o any_o other_o place_n than_o our_o ancestor_n former_o do_v and_o even_o of_o late_a in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o the_o last_o of_o lateran_n where_o they_o sit_v next_o after_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n before_o the_o ambassador_n of_o all_o other_o prince_n and_o if_o this_o new_a place_n which_o the_o count_n de_fw-fr luna_n the_o most_o illustrious_a ambassador_n of_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n do_v now_o go_v to_o take_v out_o of_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o ambassador_n can_v bring_v any_o prejudice_n to_o we_o or_o other_o ambassador_n it_o be_v your_o part_n most_o holy_a father_n which_o do_v here_o by_o your_o noble_a office_n represent_v the_o church_n catholic_a to_o cause_v we_o to_o be_v rank_v in_o our_o ancient_a order_n or_o else_o proceed_v against_o we_o by_o evangelicall_n de●unciations_n but_o see_v that_o you_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o matter_n and_o that_o the_o illustrious_a ambassador_n of_o his_o imperial_a majesty_n to_o who_o the_o case_n be_v common_a with_o we_o do_v not_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o this_o innovation_n we_o who_o do_v this_o day_n preserve_v the_o possession_n of_o their_o ancient_a right_n unto_o our_o king_n among_o the_o rank_n of_o ambassador_n be_v place_v next_o to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o his_o imperial_a majesty_n and_o who_o make_v no_o doubt_n of_o the_o faith_n amity_n and_o affinity_n of_o philip_n the_o most_o great_a and_o most_o puissant_a catholic_a king_n to_z charles_n his_o brother_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n who_o be_v under_o age_n we_o only_o desire_v of_o you_o that_o you_o will_v so_o conceive_v of_o what_o have_v be_v do_v and_o say_v this_o day_n by_o the_o most_o illustrious_a count_n de_fw-fr luna_n that_o no_o prejudice_n may_v accrue_v to_o the_o ancient_a prerogative_n and_o perpetual_a possession_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n and_o that_o you_o will_v command_v that_o this_o also_o be_v insert_v in_o the_o acts._n 4_o see_v here_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o quarrel_n which_o show_v a_o resolution_n on_o the_o spaniard_n part_n to_o change_v his_o place_n and_o gain_v the_o priority_n wherein_o he_o be_v back_v out_o by_o pope_n pius_n the_o second_o who_o use_v all_o the_o power_n he_o have_v in_o this_o council_n send_v a_o peremptory_a command_n from_o rome_n that_o the_o ambassador_n of_o both_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v cense_v at_o the_o same_o time_n hear_v what_o onuphrius_n panuinus_n say_v of_o it_o at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n there_o be_v a_o great_a controversy_n because_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o two_o king_n be_v cense_v at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o special_a command_n from_o the_o pope_n he_o say_v true_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a controversy_n for_o the_o lord_n of_o ferrier_n and_o pibrac_n take_v the_o pope_n up_o for_o it_o with_o pretty_a tart_a term_n say_v among_o other_o thing_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o oration_n deliver_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o september_n 1563._o that_o in_o stead_n of_o bread_n he_o give_v his_o elder_a son_n scorpion_n that_o they_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o all_o that_o be_v do_v to_o their_o prince_n upon_o he_o that_o he_o rob_v his_o elder_a son_n of_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o that_o he_o arrogate_a unto_o himself_o power_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o council_n that_o he_o prescribe_v unto_o it_o what_o it_o shall_v do_v that_o the_o french_a will_v not_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o pope_n and_o see_v what_o they_o do_v after_o that_o the_o french_a ambassador_n have_v command_v the_o prelate_n of_o france_n that_o they_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o council_n they_o themselves_o retire_v to_o venice_n 5_o we_o will_v now_o set_v down_o some_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o
act_n of_o that_o council_n 〈…〉_z to_o show_v how_o those_o father_n be_v not_o content_a to_o wrong_v our_o king_n indeed_o but_o be_v further_a ambitious_a to_o make_v it_o appear_v in_o writing_n pope_n paul_n the_o three_o in_o his_o bull_n of_o 1542._o by_o which_o he_o call_v the_o council_n do_v indeed_o give_v that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o the_o king_n of_o france_n ●●●king_v he_o in_o this_o order_n in_o that_o exhortation_n which_o he_o make_v to_o king_n and_o prince_n pray_v sai_z ●e_z the_o foresay_a emperor_n the_o most_o christian_n and_o all_o other_o king_n duke_n and_o prince_n who_o presence_n will_v be_v very_o useful_a to_o come_v themselves_o in_o person_n to_o the_o celebration_n of_o this_o sacred_a council_n in_o the_o 8_o session_n ●●●er_n paul_n the_o three_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o council_n speak_v in_o this_o manner_n that_o they_o will_v go_v on_o successive_o till_o it_o shall_v seem_v expedient_a to_o our_o holy_a father_n ●ho_n have_v communicate_v his_o council_n and_o advice_n with_o the_o most_o victorious_a emperor_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n and_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o christendom_n the_o council_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v assemble_v in_o this_o place_n 6_o all_o this_o go_v well_o yet_o but_o for_o all_o that_o we_o do_v not_o take_v it_o as_o a_o courtesy_n there_o can_v be_v then_o no_o question_n of_o the_o precedency_n because_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n be_v emperor_n too_o and_o as_o such_o take_v place_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n now_o after_o that_o ferdinand_n succeed_v charles_n the_o five_o and_o there_o be_v a_o king_n of_o spain_n in_o several_a the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n alter_v their_o s●ile_n pius_fw-la the_o four_o in_o a_o bull_n of_o 15●0_n for_o the_o continuation_n of_o the_o council_n have_v acquaint_v say_v he_o with_o our_o purpose_n our_o well-beloved_a son●es_n in_o jesus_n christ_n ferdinand_n emperor_n elect_v of_o the_o roman_n and_o o●her_o king_n and_o prince_n that_o they_o send_v their_o ambassador_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o council_n itself_o in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o the_o nine_o session_n under_o pius_n the_o four_o wherefore_o it_o advise_v the_o emperor_n king_n commonwealth_n prince_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o acclamation_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n worst_a of_o all_o bless_a be_v the_o memory_n say_v they_o of_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o and_o of_o those_o most_o serene_a king_n that_o promote_v and_o protect_v this_o general_n council_n resp._n amen_o amen_n many_o year_n to_o the_o most_o serene_a emperor_n ferdinand_n ever-augustus_n orthodox_n and_o peaceable_a and_o to_o all_o other_o king_n commonwealth_n and_o prince_n 7_o see_v here_o as_o sad_a a_o end_n for_o our_o king_n as_o the_o beginning_n be_v please_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o father_n and_o ambassador_n they_o be_v diverse_o rank_v but_o still_o to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o france_n in_o the_o edition_n at_o lion_n in_o 4_o print_v by_o rovillius_fw-la ann_n 1566_o as_o also_o in_o the_o french_a translation_n by_o gentianus_n hervetus_n print_v 1566_o and_o in_o the_o collection_n of_o the_o oration_n speak_v in_o the_o council_n print_v at_o paris_n 1563_o this_o title_n be_v put_v before_o it_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o ambassador_n who_o name_n be_v here_o underwritten_a according_a to_o their_o come_n to_o the_o city_n of_o trent_n and_o afterward_o the_o ambassador_n be_v so_o rank_v that_o the_o french_a come_v after_o the_o spanish_a and_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o council_n in_o latin_a print_v at_o anvers_n 1596_o and_o another_o at_o lion_n by_o the_o same_o rovilliu●_n ann_n 1584._o the_o french_a ambassador_n be_v place_v next_o after_o the_o emperor_n but_o it_o be_v afterward_o say_v that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n ambassador_n or_o orator_n sit_v by_o himself_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o controversy_n which_o a●ose_v betwixt_o he_o and_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n see_v here_o a_o suit_n for_o our_o king_n which_o they_o may_v thank_v this_o council_n for_o they_o can_v never_o approve_v the_o act_n of_o it_o without_o do_v unto_o themselves_o a_o most_o gross_a prejudice_n that_o will_v be_v asmuch_o as_n give_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n a_o title_n whereby_o he_o will_v endeavour_v to_o make_v his_o cause_n good_a hereafter_o and_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o ward_v this_o blow_n but_o by_o reject_v the_o council_n consider_v withal_o the_o great_a favour_n do_v by_o it_o unto_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n not_o only_o in_o this_o but_o all_o other_o thing_n so_o when_o there_o be_v any_o occasion_n of_o make_v answer_n to_o his_o ambassador_n this_o council_n can_v find_v word_n significant_a enough_o to_o express_v their_o commendation_n wherein_o it_o be_v too_o excessive_a and_o on_o the_o contrary_a too_o reserve_v and_o spare_v when_o there_o be_v any_o question_n about_o they_o of_o france_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o what_o pope_n gregory_n say_v council_n who_o compare_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o ●_z to_o a_o great_a light_n shine_v in_o the_o dark_a rank_v they_o by_o that_o mean_n above_o all_o other_o king_n in_o honour_n and_o dignity_n the_o council_n on_o the_o other_o side_n give_v this_o prerogative_n to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n give_v they_o the_o honour_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a a●●ngst_v all_o catholic_a prince_n among_o who_o say_v it_o piscar_fw-la speak_v of_o king_n and_o prince_n king_n philip_n facile_fw-la princeps_fw-la the_o prime_a man_n offer_v all_o his_o study_n industry_n mean_n and_o endeavour_n both_o of_o body_n and_o mind_n 9_o one_o of_o the_o precedent_n of_o that_o council_n speak_v of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o spain_n in_o a_o certain_a book_n of_o he_o put_v the_o french_a king_n behind_o for_o dispute_v against_o brentius_n he_o say_v but_o what_o a_o thing_n will_v this_o be_v if_o those_o be_v not_o religious_a who_o the_o catholic_a church_n hold_v for_o such_o principium_fw-la as_o for_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n of_o spain_n france_n england_n portugal_n hungary_n poland_n bohemia_n scotland_n and_o all_o other_o christian_a prince_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o they_o be_v godly_a prince_n i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o in_o write_v that_o order_n be_v not_o always_o observe_v which_o belong_v unto_o the_o person_n speak_v of_o but_o for_o he_o who_o have_v be_v precedent_n in_o the_o council_n at_o that_o very_a time_n when_o the_o controversy_n arise_v he_o can_v excuse_v himself_o from_o malicious_a and_o fraudulent_a deal_n towards_o our_o king_n 10_o beside_o their_o right_n be_v so_o apparent_a that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o question_n of_o it_o in_o former_a counsel_n they_o have_v always_o take_v that_o place_n without_o any_o controversy_n the_o act_n of_o they_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o it_o and_o among_o other_o of_o that_o of_o lateran_n which_o begin_v 1512_o and_o end_v 1517_o under_o julius_n the_o second●_n and_o leo_n the_o ten_o where_o in_o the_o eight_o session_n the_o ambassador_n be_v rank_v in_o this_o order_n the_o magnificent_a signior_n lewes_n de_fw-fr solier_fw-fr ambassador_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n of_o france_n the_o magnificent_a signior_n jerom_n de_fw-fr vic_n ambassador_n of_o the_o catholic_a king_n ferdinand_n of_o arragon_n and_o in_o the_o nine_o session_n the_o magnificent_a signior_n lewes_n de_fw-fr solier_fw-fr ambassador_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n of_o france_n the_o magnificent_a signior_n jerom_n de_fw-fr vic_n ambassador_n of_o the_o most_o catholic_a king_n of_o spain_n the_o same_o be_v again_o repeat_v in_o the_o ten_o session_n basil._n 11_o aeneus_fw-la silvius_n who_o be_v afterward_o call_v pope_n pius_n the_o second_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n rank_n the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o spain_n in_o this_o order_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n the_o bishop_n of_o lubes_fw-la the_o lord_n george_n of_o the_o french_a the_o archbishop_n of_o tours_n the_o bishop_n of_o troy_n and_o other_o of_o our_o colleague_n except_o the_o archbishop_n of_o lion_n of_o the_o castilians●_n only_o the_o archbishop_n of_o consentia_n of_o the_o arragonian_n not_o a_o man_n howbeit_o it_o be_v afterward_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o albigeaune_n and_o francis_n barbarianus_fw-la who_o come_v for_o milan_n have_v undertake_v for_o the_o king_n of_o arragon_n in_o the_o edition_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n print_v at_o milan_n by_o gotardus_n ponticus_n ann_n 1511_o there_o be_v a_o picture_n at_o the_o beginning_n and_o end_n of_o either_o of_o they_o where_o the_o king_n of_o france_n be_v place_v next_o to_o the_o emperor_n 12_o there_o be_v likewise_o a_o very_a ancient_a book_n call_v the_o provincial_n of_o all_o the_o church_n where_o after_o it_o